Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n age_n catholic_n church_n 3,280 5 4.9852 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A41614 A papist mis-represented and represented, or, A twofold character of popery the one containing a sum of the superstitions, idolatries, cruelties, treacheries, and wicked principles of the popery which hath disturb'd this nation above an hundred and fifty years, fill'd it with fears and jealousies, and deserves the hatred of all good Christians : the other laying open that popery which the papists own and profess, with the chief articles of their faith, and some of the principle grounds and reasons, which hold them in that religion / by J.L. one of the Church of Rome ; to which is added, a book entituled, The doctrines and practices of the Church of Rome, truly represented, in answer to the aforesaid book by a Prote Gother, John, d. 1704.; Stillingfleet, Edward, 1635-1699. 1686 (1686) Wing G1336; ESTC R21204 180,124 215

There are 42 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

heaven_n do_v make_v division_n among_o the_o faithful_a or_o preach_v any_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o what_o they_o have_v deliver_v st._n paul_n be_v very_o express_v in_o this_o who_o foretell_v timothy_n 1_o tim._n 4.1_o 2_o 3._o of_o some_o who_o in_o latter_a time_n will_v come_v and_o preach_v a_o doctrine_n forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v receive_v brand_v they_o with_o the_o infamous_a title_n of_o man_n that_o depart_v from_o the_o faith_n give_v heed_n to_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n in_o these_o word_n plain_o let_v he_o understand_v that_o though_o these_o man_n will_v not_o deny_v christ_n that_z that_o their_o false_a doctrine_n in_o those_o two_o other_o point_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o seducer_n deserter_n of_o christ_n and_o leader_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o do_v not_o he_o as_o express_o in_o his_o 2_o d_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n c._n 2._o v._n 16_o 17_o 18._o condemn_v hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n for_o profane_a and_o vain_a babbler_n increaser_n of_o ungodliness_n and_o overthrower_n of_o the_o faith_n who_o concern_v the_o truth_n err_v only_o in_o one_o point_n say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o by_o which_o '_o ●is_n manifest_a to_o he_o that_o the_o doctrine_n now_o teach_v he_o by_o his_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o what_o she_o have_v learn_v from_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v deliver_v by_o they_o that_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o deny_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n 1_o joh._n 2.22_o and_o that_o every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o god_n ib._n c._n 4._o v._n 3._o and_o not_o only_o this_o but_o likewise_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n reject_v know_v that_o he_o that_o be_v such_o be_v subvert_v and_o sin_v be_v condemn_v of_o himself_o tit._n 3.10_o 11._o with_o this_o weighty_a advice_n to_o the_o brethren_n in_o which_o they_o be_v command_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o speak_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o there_o be_v no_o division_n among_o they_o but_z thet_z they_o be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n 1_o cor._n 1.10_o for_o that_o have_v strife_n and_o division_n among_o they_o they_o will_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v carnal_a and_o to_o walk_v as_o man_n ib._n c._n 3._o v._n 3._o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n they_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o like_a child_n and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o slight_a of_o man_n and_o cunning_a craftiness_n whereby_o they_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v ephes_n c._n 4._o five_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 14._o who_o transform_v themselves_o into_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n be_v false_a apostle_n deceitful_a worker_n 2_o cor._n 11.13_o but_o certain_o accurse_v for_o that_o trouble_v the_o faithful_a they_o will_v pervert_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n and_o preach_v another_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o have_v he_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 1.7.8_o and_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n which_o believe_v that_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v impossible_a without_o faith_n to_o please_v god_n heb._n 11.6_o teach_v likewise_o that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o hold_v fast_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n without_o waver_v for_o that_o not_o only_o they_o lose_v it_o who_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v god_n as_o some_o have_v do_v but_o also_o all_o those_o who_o endeavour_n to_o pervert_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n obstinate_o deny_v or_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n do_v so_o that_o that_o christian_n make_v but_o a_o very_a imperfect_a and_o lame_a profession_n of_o his_o faith_n who_o can_v only_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n unless_o he_o can_v with_o truth_n add_v this_o likewise_o i_o also_o believe_v the_o whole_a gospel_n that_o he_o preach_v and_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o have_v teach_v and_o deliver_v to_o we_o by_o his_o apostle_n there_o be_v the_o same_o obligation_n to_o obey_v his_o precept_n and_o hearken_v to_o his_o word_n as_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o divinity_n of_o his_o person_n and_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n of_o the_o same_o blackness_n obstinate_o to_o oppose_v any_o point_n of_o his_o doctrine_n as_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o pers●n_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o any_o uncharitableness_n in_o his_o church_n to_o declare_v plain_o this_o miserable_a unhappy_a state_n of_o all_o such_o who_o wilful_o oppose_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o of_o such_o who_o disobey_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o same_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v command_v all_o to_o hear_v and_o obey_v but_o it_o be_v her_o zeal_n so_o to_o do_v and_o the_o same_o solicitude_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n which_o move_v the_o apostle_n heretofore_o to_o preach_v the_o like_a doctrine_n to_o their_o flock_n as_o also_o the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o expel_v their_o communion_n and_o anathematise_v all_o such_o who_o by_o broach_v erroneous_a tenet_n contrary_a to_o any_o point_n of_o receive_v doctrine_n or_o by_o disobedience_n do_v wilful_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o belief_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n such_o as_o be_v martion_n basilides_n and_o bardesanes_n who_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o first_o age_n for_o oppose_v that_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o which_o we_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a such_o the_o archontic_o condemn_v likewise_o for_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n such_o tatianus_n etc._n etc._n for_o preach_a marriage_n to_o be_v unlawful_a such_o the_o millenarian_o for_o maintain_v a_o thousand_o year_n reign_v of_o christ_n up●n_n earth_n with_o his_o saint_n in_o sensual_a pleasure_n and_o so_o in_o all_o age_n other_o be_v condemn_v upon_o the_o like_a account_n it_o have_v be_v always_o a_o receive_a custom_n even_o in_o the_o pure_a time_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o the_o elder_n and_o prelate_n to_o who_o charge_n christ_n commit_v the_o care_n of_o his_o flock_n to_o oppose_v all_o those_o that_o by_o new_a doctrine_n or_o by_o make_v schism_n and_o divisious_a do_v disturb_v its_o peace_n and_o not_o to_o permit_v any_o that_o by_o such_o like_a mean_n d●d_v endeavour_v to_o destroy_v his_o unity_n so_o much_o desire_v and_o recommend_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o they_o be_v equal_o declare_v enemy_n of_o christianity_n who_o deny_v christ_n and_o they_o who_o confess_v christ_n do_v yet_o contradict_v and_o reject_v any_o part_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o this_o upon_o the_o principle_n that_o christian_a faith_n ought_v to_o be_v entire_a for_o that_o every_o article_n mystery_n and_o point_n of_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o recommend_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n whosoever_o do_v oppose_v any_o one_o point_n of_o it_o be_v immediate_o judge_v guilty_a of_o all_o in_o discredit_v the_o authority_n on_o which_o the_o whole_a stand_v equal_o ground_v and_o this_o be_v that_o great_a truth_n proclaim_v above_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o now_o every_o where_o read_v in_o st._n athanasius_n creed_n whosoever_o will_v be_v save_v before_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o faith_n except_o every_o one_o do_v keep_v whole_a and_o undefiled_a without_o doubt_n he_o shall_v perish_v everlasting_o by_o which_o word_n be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o then_o pure_a and_o unspotted_a church_n as_o receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v vain_a for_o any_o one_o to_o hope_v for_o salvation_n unless_o he_o first_o believe_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o whole_a and_o undefiled_a shall_v certain_o perish_v everlasting_o which_o be_v a_o doctrine_n like_o that_o deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o as_o whosoever_o fail_v in_o one_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o all_o so_o also_o
of_o it_o shall_v be_v sensible_a of_o the_o alteration_n but_o also_o to_o be_v manage_v with_o such_o policy_n and_o craft_n that_o the_o whole_a business_n shall_v be_v a_o secret_a for_o many_o age_n and_o if_o this_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v think_v possible_a of_o this_o one_o kingdom_n what_o can_v be_v imagine_v when_o it_o be_v affirm_v of_o many_o nation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n can_v any_o thing_n look_v more_o like_o a_o fable_n or_o romance_n or_o can_v any_o rational_a man_n bare_o upon_o such_o a_o report_n condemn_v the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o his_o ancestor_n for_o novelty_n and_o humane_a invention_n and_o quite_o lay_v aside_o this_o take_v he_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o reformation_n who_o thus_o without_o reason_n justice_n or_o truth_n have_v throw_v such_o a_o infamy_n upon_o all_o the_o christian_n precede_v he_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o not_o to_o insist_v upon_o these_o reason_n for_o the_o wipe_v off_o the_o scandal_n of_o novelty_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o here_o to_o look_v beyond_o the_o ten_o century_n as_o also_o beyond_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n gregory_n and_o if_o in_o those_o early_a christian_n nothing_o can_v be_v find_v of_o that_o faith_n and_o profession_n which_o be_v charge_v as_o novelty_n and_o error_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v join_v with_o their_o adversary_n and_o condemn_a pope_n gregory_n for_o a_o seducer_n and_o all_o of_o the_o ten_o age_n for_o so_o many_o ignoramus_n shall_v in_o one_o voice_n with_o they_o cry_v out_o against_o all_o such_o doctrine_n novelty_n novelty_n error_n error_n but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a every_o point_n thus_o challenge_v of_o novelty_n shall_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o before_o pope_n gregory_n we_o find_v that_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o real_a presence_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o use_n of_o holy_a image_n relic_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n procession_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o receive_a doctrine_n and_o common_a practice_n of_o christian_n in_o those_o primitive_a time_n then_o shall_v the_o papist_n remain_v as_o they_o be_v as_o be_v of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o religion_n with_o those_o ancient_a believer_n without_o any_o addition_n and_o alteration_n and_o all_o their_o adversary_n ought_v in_o justice_n to_o return_v again_o to_o their_o communion_n and_o make_v up_o one_o quite_o cry_v out_o with_o they_o blessed_n be_v they_o who_o believe_v as_o our_o forefather_n believe_v who_o receive_v their_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o accurse_a be_v they_o who_o separate_v from_o this_o faith_n and_o upon_o the_o noise_n of_o novelty_n and_o error_n make_v division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o fall_v from_o her_o communion_n believe_v lie_n rather_o than_o truth_n in_o order_n to_o this_o i_o intend_v in_o this_o place_n to_o have_v give_v the_o reader_n a_o fair_a prospect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o father_n at_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o find_v the_o matter_n to_o increase_v so_o much_o beyond_o expectation_n upon_o my_o hand_n i_o have_v reserve_v they_o for_o another_o occasion_n but_o however_o upon_o confidence_n of_o what_o i_o be_o able_a to_o produce_v in_o that_o point_n i_o can_v omit_v to_o assure_v the_o reader_n that_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o material_a point_n charge_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o novelty_n the_o primitive_a father_n do_v so_o plain_o own_o to_o have_v be_v the_o faith_n and_o profession_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n and_o to_o have_v be_v deliver_v down_o and_o teach_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o a_o impartial_a considerer_n need_v not_o take_v much_o time_n to_o conclude_v whether_o be_v the_o great_a innovator_n those_o that_o now_o believe_v and_o profess_v these_o tenet_n and_o practice_n or_o they_o that_o disown_n or_o reject_v they_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o every_o point_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v now_o decry_v for_o popery_n and_o base_o stigmatise_v with_o the_o note_n of_o error_n introduce_v of_o late_a and_o of_o a_o modern_a invention_n be_v by_o many_o age_n old_a than_o those_o who_o be_v repute_v to_o be_v the_o author_n that_o every_o particular_a article_n lay_v to_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o ten_o century_n and_o to_o the_o contrivance_n of_o pope_n gregory_n be_v as_o express_o and_o clear_o own_a and_o teach_v some_o age_n before_o as_o it_o be_v now_o at_o this_o day_n that_o those_o great_a man_n be_v as_o downright_a papist_n in_o these_o point_n as_o we_o be_v now_o and_o that_o any_o disturber_n of_o christianity_n may_v have_v as_o well_o define_v they_o for_o believer_n of_o novelty_n and_o error_n as_o we_o be_v now_o at_o this_o present_a the_o faith_n that_o they_o profess_v then_o we_o profess_v now_o and_o if_o any_o of_o our_o doctrine_n be_v novelty_n it_o be_v a_o novelty_n of_o above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n stand_v and_o who_o can_v question_v it_o not_o to_o be_v of_o a_o old_a date_n if_o it_o be_v the_o public_a belief_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o the_o four_o century_n who_o can_v be_v better_a witness_n of_o what_o be_v believe_v before_o they_o even_o in_o the_o three_o age_n than_o they_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o doctrine_n they_o maintain_v and_o deliver_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n and_o as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o we_o do_v find_v that_o in_o any_o of_o these_o point_n they_o be_v challenge_v by_o any_o authority_n or_o oppose_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o writer_n either_o then_o live_v or_o succeed_v they_o but_o receive_v always_o with_o great_a veneration_n and_o upon_o what_o ground_n can_v any_o challenge_v they_o now_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o live_n now_o can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n of_o what_o be_v believe_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o three_o age_n than_o they_o that_o immediate_o follow_v they_o which_o will_v be_v more_o credible_a witness_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o forty_o eight_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v alive_a fifty_o year_n hence_o or_o they_o that_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o come_v these_o thousand_o year_n if_o therefore_o these_o holy_a man_n declare_v to_o we_o the_o doctrine_n they_o believe_v with_o a_o assurance_n that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o believe_v by_o their_o ancestor_n and_o as_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n do_v not_o they_o deserve_v better_a credit_n than_o other_o who_o come_v a_o thousand_o year_n after_o cry_v out_o against_o all_o these_o several_a point_n that_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o novelty_n and_o error_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o to_o he_o that_o this_o noise_n of_o novelty_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o stratagem_n for_o the_o introduce_v of_o novelty_n and_o that_o those_o that_o bring_v a_o infamy_n upon_o these_o point_n by_o this_o aspersion_n may_v with_o as_o great_a applause_n every_o and_o as_o easy_o have_v lay_v a_o scandal_n upon_o other_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n which_o they_o think_v sit_v to_o retain_v and_o have_v have_v they_o all_o explode_v for_o novelty_n and_o this_o have_v be_v so_o far_o do_v already_o that_o even_o three_o part_n of_o that_o doctrine_n pick_v out_o by_o the_o first_o reformer_n for_o apostolical_a and_o conform_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o have_v see_v in_o our_o day_n clameme_v against_o for_o novelty_n and_o throw_v by_o with_o as_o general_a approbation_n and_o as_o clear_a evidence_n of_o the_o charge_n as_o ever_o they_o lay_v by_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o primacy_n the_o first_o reformer_n cast_v off_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o first_o bishop_n as_o be_v a_o novelty_n other_o soon_o alter_v cry_v down_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o bishop_n for_o a_o novelty_n the_o first_o disow_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o priestly_a function_n as_o be_v late_o creep_v in_o the_o other_o disow_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o even_o ordination_n itself_o as_o have_v all_o creep_v in_o together_o the_o first_o throw_v out_o a_o great_a number_n of_o ceremony_n as_o be_v not_o apostolical_a but_o of_o a_o modern_a institution_n the_o other_o throw_v out_o even_o what_o they_o have_v retain_v for_o be_v no_o more_o a_o ordination_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o former_a the_o first_o lay_v by_o five_o of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o other_o lay_v by_o the_o other_o two_o and_o thus_o novelty_n be_v the_o
the_o catholic_n church_n now_o sufficient_o clear_v to_o i_o that_o she_o teach_v not_o the_o opinion_n i_o so_o vehement_o persecute_v and_o this_o he_o do_v delude_v and_o deceive_v by_o the_o manichee_n and_o now_o since_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o have_v not_o be_v the_o case_n of_o saint_n augustine_n alone_o but_o of_o as_o many_o almost_o as_o have_v give_v ear_n to_o the_o deserter_n of_o this_o church_n nay_o be_v at_o this_o day_n the_o case_n of_o infinite_a number_n who_o follow_v that_o great_a father_n when_o as_o yet_o in_o his_o error_n do_v not_o inquire_v how_o this_o thing_n be_v believe_v or_o understand_v by_o she_o but_o insult_o oppose_v all_o as_o if_o so_o understand_v as_o they_o imagine_v not_o make_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n teach_v and_o what_o they_o think_v she_o teach_v and_o so_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o as_o many_o absurdity_n folly_n impiety_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o heathen_n do_v of_o old_a it_o be_v evident_a there_o be_v as_o much_o need_n now_o of_o apology_n as_o ever_o there_o be_v in_o tertellian_n or_o s._n augustine_n time_n not_o apology_n to_o vindicate_v what_o be_v real_o her_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n but_o rather_o to_o clear_v she_o from_o such_o superstition_n profaneness_n and_o wicked_a principle_n as_o be_v malicious_o or_o ignorant_o charge_v upon_o she_o and_o though_o the_o number_n of_o calumny_n the_o in-sincerity_n of_o adversary_n the_o obstinacy_n of_o a_o bias_v education_n render_v a_o performance_n in_o this_o kind_n a_o just_a task_n for_o a_o tertullian_n or_o st._n augustine_n hand_n yet_o because_o i_o find_v no_o such_o eminent_a pen_n engage_v in_o this_o design_n at_o present_a and_o the_o show_v the_o true_a religion_n in_o its_o own_o colour_n seem_v a_o duty_n incumbent_n on_o every_o one_o that_o be_v a_o lover_n of_o truth_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o pull_v off_o the_o vizor_n from_o suffering_n christianity_n and_o apologise_v for_o the_o cotholick_a faith_n that_o faith_n i_o mean_v maintain_v by_o those_o primitive_a father_n with_o so_o much_o vigour_n and_o zeal_n which_o be_v first_o plant_v in_o the_o head_n city_n of_o the_o world_n by_o st._n ●eter_n have_v be_v propagate_v throughout_o the_o universe_n and_o derive_v down_o to_o we_o by_o many_o christian_a nation_n in_o communion_n with_o that_o see_v under_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o chief_a pastor_n which_o beginning_n in_o that_o great_a apostle_n have_v continue_v in_o a_o visible_a succession_n to_o these_o our_o day_n this_o faith_n it_o be_v for_o which_o at_o present_a i_o design_n to_o make_v a_o apology_n which_o have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n violent_o oppose_v do_v at_o this_o time_n most_o wrongful_o suffer_v under_o calumny_n and_o false_a imputation_n i_o will_v endeavour_v therefore_o to_o separate_v these_o calumny_n and_o scandal_n from_o what_o be_v real_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n i_o will_v take_v off_o the_o black_a and_o dirt_n which_o have_v be_v throw_v upon_o she_o and_o set_v she_o forth_o in_o her_o genuine_a complexion_n let_v the_o world_n see_v how_o much_o fair_a she_o be_v than_o she_o be_v paint_v and_o how_o much_o she_o be_v unlike_o that_o monster_n which_o be_v show_v for_o she_o and_o because_o the_o member_n of_o this_o church_n be_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n i_o think_v i_o can_v take_v a_o more_o sincere_a open_a and_o compendious_a way_n in_o order_n to_o the_o complete_n this_o design_n than_o by_o draw_v forth_o a_o double_a character_n of_o a_o papist_n the_o one_o express_v a_o papist_n in_o those_o very_a colour_n as_o he_o be_v paint_v in_o the_o imagination_n of_o the_o vulgar_a foul_a black_a and_o antichristian_a with_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o his_o imagine_a belief_n and_o repute_v principle_n of_o his_o profession_n the_o other_o represent_v a_o papist_n who_o faith_n and_o exercise_n of_o his_o religion_n be_v according_a to_o the_o direction_n and_o command_n of_o his_o church_n that_o so_o these_o two_o be_v thus_o set_v together_o their_o difference_n and_o disproportion_n may_v be_v clear_o discern_v and_o a_o discovery_n make_v how_o unlike_a calumny_n be_v from_o truth_n and_o how_o different_a a_o papist_n real_o be_v from_o what_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o former_a character_n be_v of_o a_o papist_n misrepresent_v the_o other_o of_o a_o papist_n represent_v the_o former_a be_v a_o papist_n so_o deform_v and_o monstrous_a that_o it_o just_o deserve_v the_o hatred_n of_o as_o many_o as_o own_o christianity_n it_o be_v a_o papist_n that_o have_v disturb_v this_o nation_n now_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n with_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n threaten_v it_o continual_o with_o fire_n and_o massacre_n and_o who_o whole_a design_n have_v be_v to_o rob_v the_o sovereign_n of_o his_o crown_n and_o the_o subject_a of_o his_o liberty_n and_o property_n it_o be_v a_o papist_n that_o be_v so_o abominable_a so_o malicious_a so_o unsufferable_a in_o any_o civil_a government_n that_o for_o my_o part_n i_o detest_v he_o from_o my_o heart_n i_o conceive_v a_o hatred_n against_o he_o and_o all_o his_o from_o my_o education_n when_o as_o yet_o a_o protestant_n and_o now_o be_v a_o roman_n catholic_n i_o be_o not_o in_o the_o least_o reconcile_v to_o he_o nor_o his_o principle_n but_o hate_v he_o yet_o worse_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v the_o law_n too_o severe_a against_o such_o popish_a recusant_n that_o i_o can_v wish_v a_o far_o great_a severity_n be_v execute_v against_o they_o their_o favourer_n and_o all_o such_o as_o make_v man_n so_o sottish_o religious_a and_o if_o to_o be_v a_o protestant_n nothing_o more_o be_v requisite_a than_o to_o protest_v against_o such_o popery_n to_o hate_v and_o detest_v it_o i_o think_v myself_o and_o all_o roman_a catholic_n as_o good_a protestant_n as_o any_o whatsoever_o throughout_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o i_o dare_v engage_v that_o not_o only_o as_o many_o roman_a catholic_n as_o under_o the_o name_n of_o papist_n have_v severe_o smart_v in_o this_o nation_n for_o be_v the_o professor_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o popery_n but_o also_o that_o all_o roman_n catholic_n nation_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v subscribe_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o all_o such_o popish_a principle_n and_o doctrine_n shall_v join_v with_o all_o good_a protestant_n for_o the_o extinguish_n it_o with_o all_o that_o profess_v or_o practise_v it_o and_o utter_a root_n it_o out_o from_o his_o majesty_n three_o kingdom_n and_o the_o whole_a universe_n the_o other_o papist_n be_v one_o that_o live_v and_o believe_v according_a to_o what_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o catechism_n set_v forth_o by_o catholic_n and_o other_o spiritual_a book_n for_o the_o direction_n and_o instruction_n of_o all_o in_o their_o communion_n who_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n i_o have_v here_o set_v down_o with_o some_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o it_o and_o will_v so_o leave_v it_o to_o apologise_v for_o itself_o in_o draw_v out_o the_o character_n of_o the_o former_a i_o have_v quote_v no_o author_n but_o have_v describe_v he_o exact_o according_a to_o the_o apprehension_n i_o have_v of_o a_o papist_n frame_v by_o i_o when_o i_o be_v a_o protestant_n with_o the_o addition_n only_o of_o some_o few_o point_n which_o have_v be_v violent_o charge_v against_o i_o by_o some_o intimate_a friend_n of_o late_a to_o show_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o my_o choice_n after_o the_o quit_n of_o that_o communion_n the_o latter_a be_v whole_o copy_v out_o from_o the_o papist_n that_o i_o be_o now_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o i_o be_v teach_v when_o reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o which_o after_o sixteen_o year_n conversation_n with_o man_n of_o that_o communion_n in_o hear_v their_o sermon_n in_o be_v present_a at_o their_o catechise_n in_o read_v their_o book_n and_o discourse_v with_o they_o i_o have_v find_v to_o be_v their_o doctrine_n i_o have_v do_v both_o i_o hope_v with_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n and_o without_o passion_n for_o as_o my_o endeavour_n have_v be_v that_o my_o religion_n shall_v lose_v nothing_o by_o lie_n so_o neither_o do_v i_o desire_v it_o shall_v gain_v by_o they_o and_o do_v i_o but_o know_v of_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o follow_a paper_n that_o have_v any_o relation_n to_o that_o unchristian_a artifice_n i_o will_v strike_v it_o out_o immediate_o and_o do_v here_o oblige_v myself_o upon_o information_n either_o from_o friend_n or_o adversary_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o mistake_n as_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v appear_v and_o make_v a_o public_a recantation_n but_o it_o be_v time_n we_o shall_v see_v what_o these_o papist_n be_v a_o answer_n to_o the_o introduction_n the_o introduction_n
firm_a purpose_n of_o amendment_n and_o a_o hearty_a resolution_n of_o turn_v from_o his_o evil_a way_n may_v from_o they_o receive_v absolution_n by_o the_o authority_n give_v they_o from_o heaven_n and_o not_o doubt_v but_o god_n ratify_v above_o the_o sentence_n pronounce_v in_o that_o tribunal_n loose_v in_o heaven_n whatsoever_o be_v thus_o loose_v by_o they_o on_o earth_n and_o that_o whosoever_o come_v without_o the_o due_a preparation_n without_o a_o repentance_n from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o real_a intention_n of_o forsake_v his_o sin_n receive_v no_o benefit_n by_o the_o absolution_n but_o add_v sin_n to_o sin_n by_o a_o high_a contempt_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o abuse_v of_o his_o sacrament_n vii_o of_o confession_n we_o do_v not_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o in_o the_o power_n of_o absolve_v they_o make_v god_n of_o man_n as_o our_o misrepresenter_n pretend_v 2._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o christ_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n authority_n to_o absolve_v any_o true_o penitent_a sinner_n from_o his_o sin_n which_o he_o therefore_o needless_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o that_o such_o absolution_n be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n 3._o we_o be_v glad_a to_o find_v that_o our_o author_n declare_v that_o no_o man_n receive_v benefit_n by_o absolution_n without_o repentance_n from_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o real_a intention_n of_o forsake_v his_o sin_n by_o which_o we_o hope_v he_o mean_v more_o than_o attrition_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n which_o stick_v with_o we_o as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practicee_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o 1._o that_o secret_a confession_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n be_v make_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 6._o that_o a_o anathema_n be_v denounce_v against_o all_o that_o deny_v it_o when_o they_o can_v deny_v that_o god_n do_v forgive_v sin_n upon_o true_a contrition_n for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v say_v that_o contrition_n with_o charity_n 4._o do_v reconcile_v a_o man_n to_o god_n before_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v actual_o receive_v but_o than_o it_o add_v quidam_fw-la that_o the_o desire_n of_o confession_n be_v include_v in_o contrition_n which_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n reason_n or_o antiquity_n for_o so_o late_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o gratian_n in_o the_o 12_o the_o century_n it_o be_v a_o very_a disputable_a point_n whether_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n be_v necessary_a and_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a for_o we_o to_o understand_v how_o that_o shall_v become_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o which_o be_v not_o then_o some_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v that_o some_o good_a catholic_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o i_o suppose_v the_o old_a canonist_n may_v pass_v for_o good_a catholic_n and_o yet_o maldonat_a say_v 3_o that_o all_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o decree_v hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o divine_a precept_n for_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n he_o grant_v scotus_n to_o have_v be_v but_o he_o think_v it_o be_v now_o declare_v to_o be_v heresy_n or_o he_o wish_v it_o be_v and_o we_o think_v it_o be_v too_o much_o already_o unless_o there_o be_v better_a ground_n for_o it_o 2._o that_o a_o anathema_n be_v denounce_v against_o those_o who_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n 20.23_o so_o as_o to_o imply_v the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o appearance_n in_o the_o word_n of_o any_o such_o sense_n and_o themselves_o grant_v that_o in_o order_n to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o baptism_n of_o which_o st._n matthew_n and_o st._n mark_v speak_v in_o the_o apostle_n commission_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o sacramental_a confession_n 147._o but_o a_o general_a confession_n be_v sufficient_a and_o from_o hence_o the_o elder_a jansenius_n conclude_v that_o the_o power_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n here_o grant_v do_v not_o imply_v sacramental_a confession_n cajetant_fw-la yield_v 444._o there_o be_v no_o command_n for_o confession_n here_o and_o catharinus_n add_v that_o cajetan_n will_v not_o allow_v any_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v auricular_a confession_n and_o as_o to_o this_o particular_a he_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o command_n for_o it_o and_o he_o go_v not_o about_o to_o prove_v it_o but_o that_o cajetan_a contradict_v himself_o elsewhere_o viz._n when_o he_o write_v school-divinity_n before_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n vasques_n say_v thom._n that_o if_o these_o word_n may_v be_v understand_v of_o baptism_n none_o can_v infer_v from_o they_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n but_o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n evident_o prove_v that_o this_o place_n do_v relate_v to_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o baptism_n not_o only_o from_o the_o comparison_n of_o place_n but_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n 284._o saint_n ambrose_n and_o other_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o same_o anathema_n that_o this_o have_v be_v always_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o ancient_a practice_n either_o of_o canonical_a confession_n as_o part_v of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n for_o public_a offence_n nor_o of_o voluntary_a confession_n for_o ease_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o perplex_a mind_n of_o doubt_v or_o deject_a penitent_n but_o that_o which_o we_o say_v be_v not_o own_v nor_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n be_v this_o sacramental_a confession_n as_o necessary_a to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n before_o god_n it_o be_v therefore_o to_o no_o purpose_n to_o produce_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o a_o great_a number_n of_o citation_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o we_o never_o deny_v but_o if_o they_o hold_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n they_o must_v prove_v from_o the_o father_n that_o sin_n after_o baptism_n can_v be_v forgive_v without_o confession_n to_o man_n 681._o which_o those_o who_o consider_v what_o they_o do_v will_v never_o undertake_v there_o be_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o undoubted_a antiquity_n against_o it_o and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o bonaventu●e_n grant_v that_o before_o the_o lateran_n decree_n of_o innocentius_n 3_o it_o be_v no_o heresy_n to_o deny_v the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n and_o so_o he_o excuse_v those_o who_o in_o the_o time_n of_o lombard_n and_o gratian_n hold_v that_o opinion_n and_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v to_o this_o day_n reject_v the_o necessity_n of_o particular_a confession_n to_o a_o priest_n in_o order_n to_o remission_n as_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n themselves_o confess_v so_o godignus_n do_v of_o the_o abyssins_n philippus_n à_fw-fr ss_z trinitate_fw-la of_o the_o jacobite_n clemens_n galanus_n of_o the_o nestorian_n who_o say_v they_o make_v a_o decree_n against_o the_o use_n of_o confession_n to_o any_o but_o to_o god_n alone_o and_o alexius_n meneses_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n in_o the_o indies_n the_o greek_n believe_v confession_n only_o to_o be_v of_o positive_a and_o ecclesiastical_a institution_n as_o the_o late_a author_n of_o the_o critical_a history_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o eastern_a nation_n prove_v and_o the_o very_a form_n of_o their_o absolution_n declare_v that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v particular_a confession_n of_o all_o know_a sin_n necessary_a to_o pardon_v for_o therein_o the_o priest_n absolve_v the_o penitent_a from_o the_o sin_n he_o have_v not_o confess_v through_o forgetfulness_n or_o shame_n and_o now_o let_v any_o one_o prove_v this_o to_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_n tradition_n by_o vincentius_n his_o rule_n viz._n that_o it_o have_v be_v always_o receive_v every_o where_o and_o by_o all._n viii_o of_o indulgence_n he_o believe_v that_o his_o holy_a father_n the_o pope_n can_v give_v he_o leave_v to_o commit_v what_o sin_n he_o please_v especial_o if_o he_o can_v make_v he_o a_o present_a of_o a_o round_a sum_n of_o money_n he_o never_o need_v doubt_n of_o a_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n for_o himself_o and_o his_o heir_n for_o ever_o for_o all_o sort_n of_o crime_n or_o wickedness_n he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o posterity_n may_v have_v convenience_n of_o fall_v into_o and_o have_v this_o commission_n in_o his_o pocket_n under_o the_o pope_n broad_a seal_n he_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o christ_n will_v confirm_v and_o stand_v to_o all_o that_o his_o vicar_n upon_o earth_n have_v grant_v and_o not_o
out_o by_o many_o christian_a writer_n and_o if_o the_o church_n can_v add_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o our_o author_n think_v it_o damnable_a to_o do_v it_o how_o can_v it_o make_v any_o book_n canonical_a which_o be_v not_o so_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n for_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o add_v to_o the_o canon_n it_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n i._n e._n it_o make_v it_o necessary_a to_o believe_v some_o book_n to_o be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n which_o be_v not_o believe_v to_o be_v so_o either_o by_o the_o jewish_a or_o christian_a church_n scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o abundant_a testimony_n to_o that_o purpose_n produce_v by_o a_o learned_a bishop_n of_o this_o church_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v consider_v by_o the_o representer_n that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v talk_v so_o crude_o about_o this_o matter_n but_o however_o i_o must_v consider_v what_o he_o say_v 1._o he_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o greg._n nazianzen_n 98._o who_o be_v express_o against_o he_o and_o declare_v but_o twenty_o two_o book_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v that_o he_o think_v these_o book_n canonical_a he_o quote_v his_o oration_n on_o the_o maccabee_n 398._o where_o i_o can_v find_v nothing_o like_o it_o and_o instead_o of_o it_o he_o express_o follow_v as_o he_o declare_v the_o book_n of_o josephus_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o reason_n concern_v they_o so_o that_o if_o this_o prove_v any_o thing_n it_o prove_v josephus_n his_o book_n canonical_a and_o not_o the_o maccabee_n 2._o he_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n ambrose_n 18._o who_o in_o the_o place_n he_o refer_v to_o enlarge_v on_o the_o story_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n and_o even_o coccius_n himself_o grant_v that_o of_o old_a melito_n sardensis_n amphilochius_n greg._n nazianzen_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n s._n hierom_n russinus_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a do_v not_o own_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n for_o canonical_a 83._o 3._o innocentius_n ad_fw-la exuperium_fw-la speak_v more_o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o if_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n be_v allow_v against_o which_o bishop_n cousin_n have_v make_v considerable_a objection_n than_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o these_o book_n be_v then_o in_o the_o roman_a canon_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n 71._o appear_v evident_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n c._n 60._o wherein_o these_o book_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o this_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o code_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v as_o clear_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o canon_n then_o general_o receive_v as_o can_v be_v expect_v it_o be_v true_a the_o council_n of_o carthage_n take_v they_o in_o and_o s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o be_v leave_v out_o by_o mel●to_n bishop_n of_o sardis_n who_o live_v near_o the_o apostle_n time_n origen_n athanasius_n s._n hilary_n s._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n epiphanius_n s._n basil_n amphilochius_n s._n chrysostom_n and_o especial_o s._n jerom_n who_o have_v labour_v in_o this_o point_n so_o much_o that_o no_o few_o than_o thirteen_o place_n be_v produce_v out_o of_o he_o to_o this_o purpose_n by_o the_o forementioned_a learned_a bishop_n of_o our_o church_n who_o clear_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o tradition_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o any_o one_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o our_o author_n go_v on_o 4._o it_o be_v of_o little_a concern_v to_o he_o whether_o these_o book_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o hebrew_n copy_n i_o will_v only_o ask_v whether_o it_o be_v of_o any_o concern_n to_o he_o whether_o they_o be_v divine_o inspire_v or_o not_o he_o say_v it_o be_v damnable_a to_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n we_o mean_v book_n write_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n can_v the_o church_n make_v book_n to_o be_v so_o write_v which_o be_v not_o so_o write_v if_o not_o then_o all_o it_o have_v to_o do_v be_v to_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n what_o be_v so_o and_o what_o not_o whence_o shall_v they_o have_v this_o tradition_n but_o from_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o own_v no_o divine_a inspiration_n after_o the_o time_n of_o malachy_n how_o then_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o book_n so_o write_v after_o that_o time_n and_o he_o that_o say_v in_o this_o matter_n as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v of_o little_a concern_v to_o he_o whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n canon_n do_v little_o concern_v himself_o what_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o what_o not_o in_o this_o matter_n 5._o since_o the_o church_n declaration_n he_o say_v no_o catholic_n ever_o doubt_v what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o the_o church_n declaration_n that_o of_o innocent_a and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n then_o the_o same_o bishop_n have_v show_v he_o that_o since_o that_o time_n there_o have_v be_v very_o many_o both_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n of_o another_o opinion_n and_o a_o little_a before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n catharinus_n say_v 1535._o that_o a_o friend_n of_o he_o and_o a_o brother_n in_o christ_n deride_v he_o as_o one_o that_o want_v learning_n for_o dare_v to_o assert_v these_o book_n be_v within_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a card._n cajetan_n can_v never_o be_v persuade_v of_o it_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n than_o we_o be_v return_v to_o our_o difficulty_n how_o such_o a_o council_n can_v make_v any_o book_n canonical_a which_o be_v not_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n before_o for_o than_o they_o do_v not_o declare_v the_o canon_n but_o create_v it_o xii_o of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n of_o the_o bible_n he_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n and_o pervert_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o error_n and_o superstition_n and_o therefore_o though_o he_o dare_v not_o altogether_o lay_v it_o by_o lest_o he_o shall_v by_o so_o do_v lose_v all_o claim_n to_o christianity_n yet_o he_o utter_o disapprove_v it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o its_o genuine_a truth_n and_o purity_n and_o as_o allow_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o cry_v this_o down_o he_o believe_v it_o unlawful_a to_o be_v read_v by_o any_o of_o his_o communion_n and_o then_o put_v into_o their_o hand_n another_o volume_n which_o in_o its_o frontispiece_n bear_v the_o title_n indeed_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o book_n and_o chapter_n but_o in_o the_o context_n of_o it_o be_v so_o every_o where_o full_a of_o corruption_n falsification_n and_o intolerable_a abuse_n that_o it_o almost_o every_o where_o belie_v its_o title_n and_o be_v unfit_a for_o any_o one_o who_o profess_v himself_o asleep_o christian._n he_o believe_v it_o a_o damnable_a sin_n to_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n or_o any_o way_n to_o pervert_v it_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n or_o superstition_n and_o think_v himself_o oblige_v rather_o to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n than_o concur_v to_o or_o approve_v of_o any_o such_o falsification_n or_o corruption_n prejudicial_a to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n for_o this_o reason_n be_v conscious_a that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v several_a copy_n of_o this_o sacred_a volume_n quite_o different_a from_o the_o original_n in_o many_o place_n either_o through_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o transcriber_n or_o malice_n of_o other_o endeavour_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o gain_v credit_n to_o their_o new_a doctrine_n he_o be_v command_v not_o to_o receive_v all_o book_n indifferent_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o wear_v that_o title_n but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o church_n and_o recommend_v by_o her_o legitimate_a and_o such_o be_v that_o he_o daily_o use_v common_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n which_o have_v be_v the_o principal_a of_o all_o other_o latin_a copy_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o primitive_a time_n much_o commend_v by_o st._n augustine_n and_o never_o alter_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o once_o heretofore_o by_o the_o holy_a study_n of_o st._n hierome_n and_o twice_o or_o thrice_o since_o be_v review_v by_o authority_n and_o purge_v of_o such_o mistake_n as_o in_o length_n of_o time_n have_v creep_v in_o by_o transcriber_n or_o printer_n fault_n and_o that_o this_o translation_n be_v most_o pure_a and_o incorrupt_a as_o to_o any_o thing_n concern_v matter_n of_o belief_n or_o difference_n in_o religion_n be_v not_o only_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n but_o also_o the_o sentiment_n of_o many_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o reformation_n who_o approve_v this_o version_n and_o prefer_v it_o before_o any_o
which_o of_o all_o those_o sense_n be_v that_o intend_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o lead_v to_o truth_n and_o which_o be_v erroneous_a and_o antichristian_a he_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o any_o private_a or_o particular_a person_n not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n want_v on_o the_o scripture-side_n but_o because_o no_o private_a person_n can_v be_v certain_a whether_o among_o all_o the_o several_a meaning_n every_o text_n be_v obnoxious_a to_o that_o which_o he_o understand_v it_o in_o be_v the_o right_n or_o no._n and_o without_o this_o certainty_n of_o truth_n and_o security_n from_o error_n he_o know_v there_o be_v nothing_o capable_a of_o be_v a_o rule_n xiii_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o only_a thing_n insist_v on_o here_o be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o that_o this_o sense_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v from_o man_n private_a fancy_n which_o be_v various_a and_o uncertain_a and_o therefore_o where_o there_o be_v no_o security_n from_o error_n there_o be_v nothing_o capable_a of_o be_v a_o rule_n to_o clear_v this_o we_o must_v consider_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o make_n of_o a_o rule_n to_o prevent_v any_o possibility_n of_o mistake_n but_o that_o it_o be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v mistake_v without_o their_o own_o fault_n for_o certainty_n in_o itself_o and_o sufficiency_n for_o the_o use_n of_o other_o be_v all_o the_o necessary_a property_n of_o a_o rule_n but_o after_o all_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o man_n not_o to_o apply_v the_o rule_n aright_o and_o then_o they_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v and_o not_o the_o rule_n 2._o if_o no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o right_a sense_n of_o scripture_n than_o it_o be_v not_o plain_a in_o necessary_a thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o design_n of_o it_o and_o to_o the_o clear_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o christian_n who_o never_o doubt_v or_o dispute_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o thing_n reveal_v therein_o as_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n by_o he_o the_o deluge_n the_o history_n of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o captivity_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n his_o send_v his_o apostle_n his_o come_n again_o to_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n no_o man_n who_o read_v such_o thing_n in_o scripture_n can_v have_v any_o doubt_n about_o the_o sense_n and_o mean_v of_o the_o word_n 3._o where_o the_o sense_n be_v dubious_a we_o do_v not_o allow_v any_o man_n to_o put_v what_o sense_n he_o please_v upon_o they_o but_o we_o say_v there_o be_v certain_a mean_n whereby_o he_o may_v either_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n or_o not_o be_v damn_v if_o he_o do_v not_o and_o the_o first_o thing_n every_o man_n be_v to_o regard_v be_v not_o his_o security_n from_o be_v deceive_v but_o from_o be_v damn_v for_o truth_n be_v make_v know_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n if_o therefore_o i_o be_o sure_a to_o attain_v the_o chief_a end_n i_o be_o not_o so_o much_o concern_v as_o to_o the_o possibility_n of_o error_n as_o that_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o my_o own_o fault_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o leave_v man_n either_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n or_o to_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o it_o but_o we_o say_v they_o be_v bind_v upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o seek_v the_o truth_n sincere_o and_o to_o use_v the_o best_a mean_n in_o order_n to_o it_o and_o if_o they_o do_v this_o they_o either_o will_v not_o err_v or_o their_o error_n will_v not_o be_v their_o crime_n fourteen_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n he_o believe_v that_o his_o church_n which_o he_o call_v catholic_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n and_o profane_o allow_v to_o her_o a_o uncontrollable_a authority_n of_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o be_v fond_o abuse_v into_o a_o distrust_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o he_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o even_o of_o the_o fundamental_o of_o christianity_n from_o what_o be_v deliver_v in_o they_o though_o they_o speak_v never_o so_o plain_o he_o be_v teach_v to_o rely_v whole_o upon_o this_o church_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v one_o word_n the_o scripture_n say_v unless_o his_o church_n say_v it_o too_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o above_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o allow_v that_o order_n between_o they_o as_o be_v between_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o law_n and_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o general_o every_o private_a member_n of_o the_o reformation_n challenge_v to_o himself_o as_o often_o as_o he_o pretend_v to_o decide_v any_o doubt_n of_o his_o own_o or_o his_o neighbour_n in_o religion_n by_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v he_o teach_v at_o all_o to_o distrust_v the_o scripture_n or_o not_o to_o rely_v on_o it_o but_o only_o to_o distrust_v his_o own_o private_a interpretation_n of_o it_o and_o not_o to_o rely_v on_o his_o own_o judgement_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o any_o doubt_n concern_v faith_n or_o religion_n though_o he_o can_v produce_v several_a text_n in_o favour_n of_o his_o opinion_n but_o all_o such_o case_n he_o be_v command_v to_o re-cur_n to_o the_o church_n and_o have_v learn_v from_o she_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o such_o text_n how_o they_o have_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o whole_a community_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n and_o what_o have_v be_v their_o receive_v doctrine_n in_o such_o doubtful_a and_o difficult_a point_n he_o be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o this_o and_o never_o presume_v on_o his_o own_o private_a sentiment_n however_o seem_o ground_v on_o reason_n and_o scripture_n to_o believe_v or_o preach_v any_o new_a doctrine_n opposite_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o he_o receive_v from_o she_o the_o book_n so_o also_o to_o receive_v from_o she_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o book_n with_o a_o holy_a confidence_n that_o she_o that_o do_v not_o cheat_v he_o in_o deliver_v a_o false_a book_n for_o the_o true_a one_o will_v not_o cheat_v he_o in_o deliver_v a_o false_a and_o erroneus_fw-la sense_n for_o the_o true_a one_o her_o authority_n which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o the_o one_o be_v not_o less_o in_o the_o other_o and_o his_o own_o private_a judgement_n which_o be_v insufficient_a in_o the_o one_o that_o be_v in_o find_v out_o the_o true_a scripture_n and_o discern_v it_o from_o all_o other_o book_n be_v as_o incapable_a and_o insucffiient_a in_o the_o other_o that_o be_v in_o certain_o discover_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o avoid_v all_o other_o heterodox_n and_o mistake_v interpretation_n fourteen_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 1._o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o best_a mean_n for_o the_o right_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n by_o read_v meditation_n prayer_n advice_n a_o humble_a and_o teachable_a temper_n etc._n etc._n i._n e._n all_o the_o proper_a mean_n fit_a for_o such_o a_o end_n but_o whether_o after_o all_o these_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o submit_v to_o some_o infallible_a judge_n in_o order_n to_o the_o attain_v the_o certain_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 2._o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v a_o mighty_a regard_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o have_v but_o whether_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n as_o it_o stand_v divide_v from_o other_o communion_n have_v such_o a_o right_n and_o authority_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o infallible_a sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o she_o deliver_v and_o here_o i_o can_v but_o take_v notice_n how_o strange_o this_o matter_n be_v here_o misrepresent_v for_o the_o case_n be_v put_v 1._o as_o if_o every_o one_o who_o reject_v their_o pretence_n of_o infallibility_n have_v nothing_o to_o guide_v he_o but_o his_o own_o private_a fancy_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 2._o as_o if_o we_o reject_v the_o sense_n put_v upon_o scripture_n by_o the_o whole_a community_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n whereas_o we_o appeal_v in_o the_o matter_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o to_o this_o universal_a sense_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o be_v very_o persuade_v they_o can_v make_v it_o out_o in_o any_o one_o point_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o themselves_o can_v deny_v that_o in_o several_a we_o have_v plain_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o first_o age_n as_o far_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n remain_v
on_o our_o side_n as_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n papal_a supremacy_n communion_n in_o both_o kind_n prayer_n and_o scripture_n in_o know_a tongue_n and_o i_o may_v safe_o add_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n transubstantiation_n auricular_a confession_n public_a communion_n solitary_a mass_n to_o name_v no_o more_o but_o here_o lie_v the_o artifice_n we_o must_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v capable_a of_o judge_v either_o of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n but_o we_o must_v trust_v their_o judgement_n what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o what_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n although_o their_o own_o writer_n confess_v the_o contrary_a which_o be_v very_o hard_a but_o he_o seem_v to_o argue_v for_o such_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o church_n 1._o because_o we_o receive_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n from_o she_o therefore_o from_o she_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o book_n a_o admirable_a argument_n we_o receive_v the_o old_a testament_n from_o the_o jew_n therefore_o from_o they_o we_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o so_o we_o be_v to_o reject_v the_o true_a messiah_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o if_o by_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o distinction_n from_o other_o we_o deny_v it_o if_o they_o mean_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o then_o the_o force_n of_o it_o be_v quite_o lose_v but_o why_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o keep_v these_o write_n and_o deliver_v they_o to_o other_o which_o make_v against_o herself_o do_v not_o person_n in_o law-suit_n often_o produce_v deed_n which_o make_v against_o they_o but_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o further_a reason_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v away_o these_o write_n be_v so_o universal_o spread_v 2._o because_o the_o church_n put_v the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a book_n therefore_o that_o must_v be_v trust_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o which_o be_v just_a as_o one_o shall_v argue_v the_o clerk_n of_o the_o roll_n be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o court_n of_o true_a record_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o sit_v on_o the_o bench_n and_o to_o give_v judgement_n in_o all_o cause_n the_o church_n be_v only_o to_o declare_v what_o it_o find_v as_o to_o canonical_a book_n but_o have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v any_o book_n canonical_a which_o be_v not_o before_o receive_v for_o such_o but_o i_o confess_v stapleton_n say_v the_o church_n if_o it_o please_v may_v make_v hermes_n his_o pastor_n and_o clemens_n his_o constitution_n canonical_a 2._o but_o i_o do_v not_o think_v our_o author_n will_v therein_o follow_v he_o xv._n of_o tradition_n he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v imperfect_a and_o for_o the_o supply_n of_o what_o he_o think_v defective_a in_o it_o he_o admit_v humane_a ordination_n and_o tradition_n of_o man_n allow_v equal_a authority_n to_o these_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o think_v himself_o as_o much_o oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o these_o and_o believe_v they_o with_o divine_a faith_n as_o he_o do_v whatsoever_o be_v write_v in_o the_o bible_n and_o confess_o speak_v by_o the_o author_n of_o all_o truth_n god_n himself_o neither_o will_v he_o admit_v of_o any_o one_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o his_o communion_n although_o he_o undoubted_o believe_v every_o word_n that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n unless_o he_o also_o assent_v to_o these_o tradition_n and_o give_v as_o great_a credit_n to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n although_o in_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o footstep_n of_o they_o to_o be_v find_v he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n not_o to_o be_v imperfect_a nor_o to_o want_v humane_a ordination_n or_o tradition_n of_o man_n for_o the_o supply_v any_o defect_n in_o it_o neither_o do_v he_o allow_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o these_o as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o give_v they_o equal_a credit_n or_o exact_v it_o of_o other_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o church_n he_o believe_v no_o divine_a faith_n ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o nothing_o be_v to_o have_v place_n in_o his_o creed_n but_o what_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o teach_v in_o all_o age_n by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o congregation_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n and_o have_v be_v so_o deliver_v down_o to_o he_o through_o all_o age_n but_o now_o whether_o that_o which_o have_v be_v so_o deliver_v down_o to_o he_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v be_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o write_n be_v altogether_o indifferent_a to_o he_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o follow_v in_o this_o point_n as_o in_o all_o other_o the_o command_n of_o st._n paul_n that_o be_v to_o stand_v fast_o and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n he_o have_v learn_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o by_o epistle_n 2_o thess._n 2.15_o and_o to_o look_v upon_o any_o one_o as_o anathema_n that_o shall_v preach_v otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v thus_o receive_v gal._n 1.9_o so_o that_o as_o he_o undoubted_o hold_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n pen_v by_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o in_o all_o age_n from_o moses_n to_o christ_n and_o from_o christ_n to_o this_o time_n it_o have_v be_v so_o teach_v preach_v believe_v and_o deliver_v successive_o by_o the_o faithful_a and_o never_o scruple_n the_o least_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o nor_o stick_v to_o assent_v to_o it_o with_o a_o steadfast_a and_o divine_a faith_n although_o they_o be_v not_o nor_o have_v not_o at_o any_o time_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v what_o they_o have_v thus_o teach_v and_o deliver_v with_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o like_a manner_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v and_o believe_v all_o that_o this_o same_o congregation_n have_v together_o with_o the_o bible_n in_o all_o age_n successive_o without_o interruption_n teach_v preach_v believe_v and_o deliver_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o assent_n to_o it_o with_o divine_a faith_n just_a as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o bible_n and_o esteem_v any_o one_o anathema_n that_o shall_v preach_v otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v thus_o receive_v and_o although_o some_o may_v serious_o endeavour_v to_o convince_v he_o that_o several_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o religious_a practice_n which_o he_o have_v thus_o receive_v and_o believe_v be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n nor_o apostolical_a institution_n but_o rather_o invention_n of_o man_n and_o lesson_n of_o antichrist_n and_o shall_v produce_v several_a text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o prove_v it_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n surprise_v at_o it_o as_o well_o know_v that_o he_o that_o follow_v not_o this_o rule_n of_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v universal_o teach_v and_o believe_v as_o such_o by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o have_v in_o all_o age_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o same_o church_n may_v very_o easy_o frame_v as_o many_o creed_n as_o he_o please_v and_o make_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n speak_v what_o shall_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o his_o humour_n and_o suit_n best_o with_o his_o interest_n and_o find_v plain_a proof_n for_o all_o and_o make_v no_o more_o difficulty_n in_o produce_v scripture_n against_o christ_n doctrine_n than_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o devil_n do_v against_o christ_n person_n who_o never_o want_v their_o scriptum_n est_fw-la it_o be_v write_v when_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o carry_v on_o their_o design_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o these_o sort_n of_o argument_n to_o make_v he_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n thus_o receive_v he_o think_v it_o may_v make_v he_o call_v in_o question_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o bible_n itself_o as_o soon_o as_o any_o thing_n else_o they_o all_o stand_n upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n which_o if_o it_o fail_v in_o one_o leave_v no_o security_n in_o any_o xv._n of_o tradition_n 1._o the_o question_n be_v not_o about_o human_a tradition_n supply_v the_o defect_n of_o scripture_n as_o he_o misrepresent_v it_o but_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o unwritten_a word_n which_o we_o be_v equal_o bind_v to_o receive_v with_o the_o write_a word_n although_o these_o thing_n which_o pass_v under_o that_o name_n be_v real_o but_o huma●e_a tradition_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o
deny_v that_o they_o pretend_v they_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a original_a 2._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o apostle_n may_v deliver_v such_o thing_n by_o word_n as_o well_o as_o by_o epistle_n which_o their_o disciple_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o keep_v 2.13_o but_o we_o think_v there_o be_v some_o difference_n to_o be_v make_v between_o what_o we_o certain_o know_v they_o deliver_v in_o write_v and_o what_o it_o be_v now_o impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v viz._n what_o they_o deliver_v by_o word_n without_o writing_n 3._o we_o see_v no_o ground_n why_o any_o one_o shall_v believe_v any_o doctrine_n with_o a_o steadfast_a and_o divine_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o bottom_v on_o the_o write_a word_n for_o than_o his_o faith_n must_v be_v build_v on_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o divine_a and_o infallible_a or_o else_o his_o faith_n can_v be_v divine_a but_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a and_o infallible_a but_o by_o the_o write_a word_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a that_o he_o shall_v believe_v the_o write_a word_n by_o such_o a_o divine_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n so_o if_o any_o particular_a doctrine_n may_v be_v receive_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n without_o the_o write_a word_n than_o all_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o write_a word_n 4._o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n do_v no_o otherwise_o stand_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n than_o as_o it_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n but_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o general_a sense_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n to_o be_v a_o very_a great_a help_n for_o understand_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v any_o thing_n so_o deliver_v but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v still_o the_o way_n of_o true_a represent_v xvi_o of_o council_n he_o believe_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n may_v receive_v new_a addition_n every_o day_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o oblige_v to_o believe_v what_o christ_n teach_v and_o his_o apostle_n but_o also_o every_o definition_n or_o decree_n of_o any_o general_a council_n assemble_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o that_o as_o often_o as_o any_o thing_n be_v issue_v out_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o of_o these_o church-parliament_n and_o order_v to_o be_v believe_v he_o think_v himself_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n immediate_o bind_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o have_v add_v it_o to_o his_o creed_n to_o assent_v to_o it_o with_o as_o firm_a steadfast_a and_o divine_a a_o faith_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v command_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o decree_v in_o the_o consistory_n of_o heaven_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o never_o come_v to_o understand_v his_o religion_n or_o know_v what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v but_o by_o the_o continual_a alteration_n addition_n diminution_n interpretation_n of_o these_o council_n he_o be_v preserve_v in_o a_o necessary_a confusion_n and_o though_o he_o change_v often_o yet_o he_o fond_o think_v himself_o always_o the_o same_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n can_v receive_v no_o addition_n and_o that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v nothing_o beside_o that_o which_o christ_n teach_v and_o his_o apostle_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o this_o shall_v be_v define_v and_o command_v to_o be_v believe_v even_o by_o ten_o thousand_o council_n he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a in_o any_o one_o to_o receive_v it_o and_o by_o such_o decree_n to_o make_v addition_n to_o his_o creed_n however_o he_o maintain_v the_o necessity_n and_o right_n of_o general_n council_n lawful_o assemble_v who_o business_n it_o be_v not_o to_o coin_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o devise_v fresh_a tenet_n but_o only_o as_o often_o as_o any_o point_n of_o receive_v doctrine_n be_v impugn_a or_o call_v in_o question_n to_o debate_v the_o matter_n and_o examine_v what_o have_v be_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o nation_n who_o be_v there_o present_a in_o their_o prelate_n in_o that_o point_n and_o this_o be_v agree_v on_o to_o publish_v and_o make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n leave_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o which_o the_o new-breached_a error_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o prevent_v the_o loss_n of_o infinite_a number_n of_o soul_n which_o may_v otherwise_o be_v delude_v and_o carry_v away_o after_o new_a invention_n not_o be_v capable_a by_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o ability_n to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n and_o discover_v the_o subtlety_n of_o every_o crafty_a deceiver_n and_o in_o this_o case_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v and_o receive_v the_o decree_n of_o such_o a_o council_n the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n there_o present_a be_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n appoint_v for_o the_o decision_n of_o such_o controversy_n they_o have_v the_o care_n of_o that_o stock_n commit_v to_o they_o over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n act_v 20.28_o and_o to_o watch_v against_o those_o man_n who_o shall_v arise_v from_o among_o themselves_o speak_v perverse_a thing_n t●_n draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o ib._n vers_fw-la 30._o and_o he_o have_v receive_v command_v as_o likewise_o the_o wh●le_a flock_n of_o christ_n to_o obey_v their_o prelate_n and_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o who_o watch_n and_o be_v to_o render_v a_o account_n for_o their_o soul_n heb._n 13.17_o with_o a_o assurance_n that_o he_o that_o hear_v they_o hearch_v christ_n and_o he_o that_o despise_v they_o despise_v christ_n luke_n 10.16_o and_o withal_o be_v teach_v that_o as_o this_o way_n of_o the_o ancient_n of_o the_o church_n and_o prelate_n meeting_n in_o case_n of_o any_o danger_n threaten_v their_o flock_n or_o any_o new_a doctrine_n arise_v be_v the_o mean_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o practise_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o prevent_a schism_n and_o preserve_a unity_n among_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v speak_v and_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o same_o judgement_n 1_o cor._n 1.10_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o mean_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n for_o the_o prevent_a division_n and_o conserve_n unity_n among_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o therefore_o as_o that_o controversy_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o circumcision_n act._n c._n 15._o arise_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v not_o decide_v by_o any_o private_a person_n nor_o even_o by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n who_o nevertheless_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o one_o will_v have_v think_v may_v have_v pretend_v to_o the_o spirit_n and_o a_o heavenly_a light_n but_o by_o a_o general_n meet_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v consult_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n about_o this_o question_n so_o all_o other_o dispute_v and_o difficulty_n of_o religion_n arise_v in_o succeed_a age_n aught_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o charge_n dignity_n and_o office_n be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n though_o they_o be_v dead_a in_o person_n who_o be_v to_o consider_v of_o the_o matter_n act_n 15.6_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v while_o all_o the_o multitude_n keep_v silence_n ver_fw-la 12._o without_o any_o one_o presume_v on_o any_o learning_n gift_n virtue_n prayer_n or_o inspiration_n to_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o dispute_n or_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o question_n this_o be_v none_o of_o their_o business_n or_o obligation_n but_o only_o with_o all_o patience_n and_o humility_n to_o expect_v the_o determination_n of_o their_o prelate_n and_o elder_n and_o receive_v it_o with_o the_o same_o expression_n as_o those_o good_a christian_n do_v heretofore_o who_o rejoice_v for_o the_o consolation_n act_n 15.31_o and_o unless_o this_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o their_o obsequious_a flock_n be_v take_v as_o a_o pattern_n in_o all_o age_n for_o the_o end_n suchlike_a difficulty_n he_o believe_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o believer_n shall_v stand_v fast_o in_o one_o spirit_n with_o one_o mind_n philip._n 1.27_o and_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o divers_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n hebr._n 13.9_o xvi_o of_o council_n 1._o we_o be_v glad_a to_o find_v so_o good_a a_o resolution_n as_o seem_v to_o be_v express_v in_o these_o word_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v nothing_o beside_o that_o which_o christ_n teach_v and_o his_o apostle_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o this_o shall_v be_v define_v
and_o command_v to_o be_v believe_v even_o by_o ten_o thousand_o council_n he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a in_o any_o one_o to_o receive_v it_o and_o by_o such_o decree_n to_o make_v addition_n to_o his_o creed_n this_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o very_a good_a say_n and_o it_o be_v pity_v any_o thing_n else_o shall_v overthrow_v it_o but_o here_o lie_v the_o misrepresent_v he_o will_v believe_v what_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v from_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n and_o so_o all_o this_o goodly_a fabric_n fall_v to_o nothing_o for_o it_o be_v but_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v if_o aristotle_n shall_v false_o deliver_v plato_n sense_n i_o will_v never_o believe_v he_o but_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o take_v plato_n sense_n only_o from_o aristotle_n word_n so_o here_o he_o first_o declare_v he_o will_v take_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o church_n and_o then_o he_o say_v if_o the_o church_n representative_a shall_v contradict_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v never_o believe_v it_o 2._o we_o dispute_v not_o with_o they_o the_o right_a and_o necessity_n of_o general_n council_n upon_o great_a occasion_n if_o they_o be_v true_o so_o rightful_o call_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o fair_o manage_v which_o have_v be_v and_o may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o settle_v the_o faith_n heal_v the_o breach_n of_o christendom_n and_o reform_v abuse_n and_o we_o far_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n ought_v to_o be_v submit_v to_o where_o they_o proceed_v upon_o certain_a ground_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o upon_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o fatal_a stumble_n at_o the_o threshold_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v recover_v afterward_o for_o their_o set_n up_o tradition_n equal_o with_o the_o write_a word_n make_v it_o it_o easy_a for_o they_o to_o define_v and_o as_o easy_a for_o all_o other_o to_o reject_v their_o definition_n in_o case_n there_o have_v not_o be_v so_o many_o other_o objection_n against_o the_o proceed_n of_o that_o council_n and_o so_o all_o our_o dispute_n concern_v this_o matter_n be_v take_v off_o from_o the_o general_a notion_n and_o run_v into_o the_o particular_a debate_n concern_v the_o qualification_n and_o proceed_n of_o some_o which_o be_v call_v free_a general_a council_n but_o be_v neither_o general_n nor_o free_a and_o therefore_o can_v not_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o our_o author_n require_v they_o to_o do_v xviii_o of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n he_o believe_v that_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o his_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o like_v so_o many_o divine_a oracle_n or_o petty_a familiar_a deity_n they_o be_v exempt_a from_o error_n and_o can_v deceive_v but_o this_o especial_o when_o they_o be_v meet_v together_o in_o a_o general_n council_n it_o be_v a_o main_a part_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o then_o they_o be_v secure_a from_o all_o mistake_n and_o that_o it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o they_o to_o decline_v either_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o the_o left_a in_o any_o of_o their_o definition_n and_o decree_n as_o it_o be_v for_o god_n to_o leave_v heaven_n and_o become_v the_o author_n of_o lie_n thus_o fond_o believe_v these_o to_o be_v assist_v with_o a_o necessary_a infallibility_n like_o god_n who_o their_o ignorance_n ill_a example_n and_o debauch_a life_n to_o a_o true_a considerer_n scarce_o speak_v to_o be_v men._n as_o if_o god_n almighty_n do_v so_o blind_o throw_v his_o benefit_n and_o grace_n among_o his_o creature_n that_o none_o shall_v have_v a_o more_o powerful_a assistance_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o infallible_a spirit_n than_o those_o in_o who_o there_o be_v least_o of_o god_n to_o be_v find_v he_o believe_v that_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o his_o church_n be_v fallible_a that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o they_o but_o may_v fall_v into_o error_n heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o consequent_o be_v subject_n to_o mistake_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v fail_v or_o be_v deceive_v in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n this_o he_o believe_v impossible_a know_v it_o to_o be_v build_v on_o better_a promise_n such_o as_o secure_v she_o from_o all_o error_n and_o danger_n of_o prevarication_n her_o foundation_n be_v lay_v by_o christ_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v matthew_n 16.18_o the_o power_n that_o protect_v she_o be_v christ_n himself_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n matthew_n 28.20_o the_o spirit_n that_o guide_v and_o teach_v she_o be_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o shall_v teach_v she_o all_o thing_n and_o suggest_v to_o she_o all_o thing_n that_o christ_n have_v say_v to_o she_o joh._n 14.16_o the_o time_n that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v thus_o protect_v teach_v and_o assist_v be_v not_o only_o while_o the_o apostle_n live_v or_o for_o the_o first_o three_o for_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n next_o after_o but_o for_o ever_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n matthew_n 28.20_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o paraclete_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o joh._n 14.16_o and_o the_o thing_n that_o she_o be_v to_o be_v thus_o teach_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v all_o truth_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n joh._n 16.13_o now_o be_v assure_v by_o these_o promise_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v teach_v all_o truth_n by_o the_o special_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o have_v faith_n to_o believe_v that_o christ_n will_v make_v his_o word_n good_a and_o that_o his_o church_n shall_v never_o fail_v nor_o be_v corrupt_v with_o antichristian_a doctrine_n nor_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o error_n but_o shall_v be_v teach_v all_o truth_n and_o shall_v teach_v all_o truth_n to_o the_o consummation_n of_o thing_n and_o that_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o hear_v christ_n and_o whosoever_o despise_v she_o despise_v christ_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o a_o publican_n matthew_n 18.17_o the_o like_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o believe_v to_o be_v in_o all_o general_n council_n which_o be_v the_o church_n representative_a as_o the_o parliament_n be_v the_o representative_a of_o the_o nation_n by_o which_o they_o be_v especial_o protect_v from_o all_o error_n in_o all_o definition_n and_o declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o what_o the_o apostle_n pronounce_v concern_v the_o result_n of_o their_o council_n act_n 15.28_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o he_o do_v not_o doubt_n may_v be_v prefix_v to_o all_o the_o determination_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n resolve_v on_o by_o any_o general_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v since_o that_o time_n or_o to_o be_v hold_v to_o the_o world_n end_n the_o assistance_n be_v to_o extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o promise_n and_o though_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o several_a of_o the_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n in_o such_o a_o assembly_n as_o also_o many_o other_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v at_o other_o time_n either_o through_o pride_n or_o ignorance_n prevaricate_v make_v innovation_n in_o faith_n teach_v erroneous_a doctrine_n and_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v number_n after_o they_o yet_o he_o be_v teach_v that_o this_o do_v not_o at_o all_o argue_v a_o fallibility_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o prejudice_n her_o faith_n but_o only_o the_o person_n that_o thus_o unhappy_o fall_v into_o these_o error_n and_o cut_v themselves_o off_o from_o be_v member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n whilst_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n remain_v pure_a and_o untainted_a and_o experience_n the_o truth_n of_o what_o saint_n paul_n foretell_v that_o grievous_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n also_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v man_n arise_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o act._n 20._o v._n 29_o 30._o which_o as_o it_o prove_v true_a even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o nicholas_n and_o his_o follower_n as_o also_o several_a other_o so_o it_o have_v be_v verify_v in_o all_o age_n since_o by_o turbulent_a and_o presume_a spirit_n broach_v new_a doctrine_n and_o make_v separation_n and_o schism_n but_o this_o without_o cast_v any_o more_o aspersion_n on_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a than_o the_o fall_v of_o judas_n do_v on_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o rebellion_n of_o lucifer_n on_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o angel_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o that_o such_o wicked_a and_o presume_a spirit_n go_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o be_v expel_v their_o
a_o papist_n misrepresent_v and_o represent_v or_o a_o twofold_a character_n of_o popery_n the_o one_o contain_v a_o sum_n of_o the_o superstition_n idolatry_n cruelty_n treachery_n and_o wicked_a principle_n of_o that_o popery_n which_o have_v disturb_v this_o nation_n above_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n fill_v it_o with_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n and_o deserve_v the_o hatred_n of_o all_o good_a christian_n the_o other_z laying_z open_v that_o popery_n which_o the_o papist_n own_a and_o profess_v with_o the_o chief_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a ground_n and_o reason_n which_o hold_v they_o in_o that_o religion_n narraverunt_fw-la mihi_fw-la iniqui_fw-la fabulationes_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la ut_fw-la lex_fw-la tua_fw-la psal._n 119._o v_o 85_o by_o i._o l._n one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o book_n entitle_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n true_o represent_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o aforesaid_a book_n by_o a_o protestant_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o for_o the_o reader_n better_a convenience_n in_o the_o reprinting_a it_o be_v so_o order_v that_o every_o chapter_n of_o the_o latter_a immediate_o follow_v that_o of_o the_o former_a to_o which_o it_o be_v a_o answer_n license_v according_a to_o order_n dublin_n reprint_v by_o a._n c._n &_o s._n h._n for_o the_o society_n of_o stationer_n 1686._o a_o papist_n misrepresent_v and_o represent_v or_o a_o twofold_a character_n of_o popery_n to_o which_o be_v add_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n true_o represent_v &c_n &c_n the_o introduction_n the_o father_n of_o lie_n be_v the_o author_n of_o misrepresenting_a he_o first_o make_v the_o experiment_n of_o this_o black_a art_n in_o paradise_n have_v no_o sure_a way_n of_o bring_v god_n precept_n into_o contempt_n and_o make_v our_o first_o parent_n transgress_v than_o by_o misrepresenting_a the_o command_n which_o their_o maker_n have_v lay_v upon_o they_o and_o so_o unhappy_o successful_a he_o be_v in_o this_o his_o first_o attempt_n that_o this_o have_v be_v his_o chief_a stratagem_n ever_o since_o in_o all_o business_n of_o difficulty_n and_o concern_v esteem_v that_o his_o best_a mean_n for_o preserve_v and_o propagate_a wickedness_n among_o man_n by_o which_o he_o first_o win_v they_o to_o lose_v their_o innocence_n and_o therefore_o there_o have_v nothing_o of_o good_a yet_o come_v into_o the_o world_n nothing_o be_v send_v from_o heaven_n but_o what_o have_v meet_v with_o this_o opposition_n the_o common_a enemy_n have_v employ_v all_o his_o endeavour_n of_o bring_v it_o into_o discredit_n and_o render_v it_o infamous_a by_o misrepresenting_a of_o this_o there_o be_v frequent_a instance_n in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o more_o in_o the_o new_a the_o truth_n of_o it_o be_v experience_v on_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o immaculate_a lamb_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o calumny_n and_o exempt_a from_o be_v misrepresent_v see_v how_o he_o be_v paint_v by_o malicious_a man_n the_o son_n of_o belial_n minister_n of_o satan_n a_o profane_a and_o wicked_a man_n a_o breaker_n of_o the_o sabbath_n a_o glutton_n a_o friend_n and_o companion_n of_o publican_n and_o sinner_n a_o fool_n a_o conjurer_n a_o traitor_n a_o seducer_n a_o tumultuous_a person_n a_o samaritan_n full_a of_o the_o devil_n he_o have_v belzebub_n and_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o devil_n cast_v he_o out_o devil_n mark_n 3.22_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n of_o fright_v the_o people_n from_o embrace_v the_o truth_n follow_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o by_o thus_o disfigure_v he_o to_o the_o multitude_n report_v light_a to_o be_v darkness_n and_o god_n to_o be_v the_o devil_n the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n every_o where_o meet_v with_o the_o like_a encounter_n stephen_n have_v the_o people_n stir_v up_o against_o he_o because_o they_o hear_v he_o have_v speak_v blasphemous_a word_n against_o moses_n and_o against_o god_n act_n 6.11_o paul_n also_o and_o silas_n for_o exceed_o trouble_v the_o city_n act_n 16.20_o jason_n also_o with_o they_o because_o he_o have_v turn_v the_o world_n upside_o down_o and_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o caesar_n act_n 17.6_o 7._o paul_n again_o because_o he_o do_v teach_v all_o man_n every_o where_o against_o the_o people_n and_o pollute_v the_o holy_a place_n act_n 21.28_o and_o because_o he_o be_v a_o pestilent_a fellow_n and_o a_o mover_n of_o sedition_n among_o all_o the_o jew_n throughout_o the_o world_n to_o which_o the_o jew_n also_o assent_v say_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o act_n 24.5_o 9_o neither_o do_v these_o calumny_n these_o wicked_a misrepresentation_n stop_v here_o he_o that_o say_v the_o disciple_n be_v not_o above_o his_o master_n if_o they_o have_v call_v the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n belzebub_n how_o much_o more_o shall_v they_o call_v they_o of_o his_o household_n do_v not_o only_o foretell_v what_o be_v to_o happen_v to_o his_o follower_n then_o present_a but_o also_o to_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v to_o succeed_v they_o and_o to_o his_o church_n in_o future_a age_n they_o be_v all_o to_o expect_v the_o like_a fate_n that_o though_o they_o shall_v be_v never_o so_o just_a to_o god_n and_o their_o neighbour_n upright_o in_o their_o way_n and_o live_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o the_o observance_n of_o his_o law_n yet_o must_v they_o certain_o be_v revile_v and_o hate_v by_o the_o world_n make_v a_o byword_n to_o the_o people_n and_o have_v the_o repute_n of_o idiot_n seducer_n and_o be_v a_o scandal_n to_o all_o nation_n and_o have_v not_o this_o be_v verify_v in_o all_o age_n see_v what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n when_o as_o yet_o vice_n have_v not_o corrupt_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a to_o believe_v in_o what_o contempt_n they_o be_v and_o how_o utter_o abominate_v tertullian_n who_o be_v a_o sharer_n of_o a_o great_a part_n give_v we_o so_o lamentable_a a_o account_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o move_v compassion_n in_o stone_n he_o tell_v we_o so_o many_o malicious_a slander_n be_v disperse_v abroad_o concern_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o worship_n and_o their_o whole_a doctrine_n describe_v not_o only_o to_o be_v folly_n and_o mere_a toy_n but_o also_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o most_o hellish_a principle_n and_o so_o to_o be_v full_a of_o impiety_n that_o the_o heathen_n believe_v a_o man_n can_v not_o make_v profession_n of_o christianity_n without_o be_v taint_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o crime_n without_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o god_n to_o prince_n to_o the_o law_n 2._o to_o good_a manner_n and_o to_o nature_n hence_o they_o conceive_v such_o prejudice_n against_o they_o and_o they_o be_v render_v so_o impious_a in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o vulgar_a that_o whatsoever_o accusation_n be_v bring_v in_o though_o never_o so_o false_a and_o malicious_a whatsoever_o villainy_n be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n all_o be_v welcome_a to_o the_o enrage_a multitude_n to_o which_o nothing_o seem_v incredibie_o concern_v those_o that_o be_v thus_o already_o odious_a upon_o this_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o guilty_a of_o atheism_n of_o superstition_n of_o idolatry_n of_o cruelty_n of_o sedition_n of_o conspiracy_n of_o treason_n and_o bloody_a persecution_n be_v raise_v against_o they_o to_o which_o the_o people_n be_v exasperate_v by_o fear_n and_o jealousy_n quod_fw-la pontifices_fw-la as_o spondanus_n say_v gentilitiae_fw-la superstitionis_fw-la christianos_n more_o solito_fw-la calumniis_fw-la circumvenissent_fw-la 5._o quasi_fw-la aliquid_fw-la contra_fw-la imperium_fw-la molirentur_fw-la because_o the_o priest_n do_v use_v to_o divulge_v it_o abroad_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v plot_v against_o the_o government_n nor_o be_v these_o crime_n the_o whole_a sum_n of_o their_o charge_n for_o beside_o every_o public_a calamity_n and_o misfortune_n that_o befall_v the_o commonwealth_n be_v throw_v upon_o they_o if_o 362._o daphne_n temple_n be_v consume_v by_o lightning_n from_o heaven_n yet_o must_v the_o christian_n be_v condemn_v as_o the_o incendiary_n if_o 66._o the_o city_n be_v lay_v in_o ash_n it_o must_v be_v revenge_v on_o the_o christian_n nay_o 40._o tertullian_n have_v it_o if_o tiber_n overflow_v if_o nile_n water_v not_o the_o plain_n if_o heaven_n stop_v its_o course_n and_o do_v not_o pour_v its_o rain_n here_o below_o if_o there_o be_v earthquake_n famine_n or_o plague_n they_o will_v immediate_o cry_v out_o christianos_n ad_fw-la leones_n cast_v the_o christian_n to_o the_o lion_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o calamity_n that_o arrive_v in_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o evil_n that_o people_n suffer_v and_o now_o the_o christian_n
be_v thus_o repute_v profane_a in_o their_o worship_n enemy_n to_o the_o government_n and_o the_o undoubted_a occasion_n of_o every_o misfortune_n throughout_o the_o empire_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o conceive_v in_o what_o contempt_n they_o be_v and_o how_o detestable_a among_o the_o heathen_n but_o because_o none_o can_v relate_v it_o so_o to_o the_o life_n as_o 3._o tertullian_n have_v do_v i_o will_v set_v it_o down_o in_o his_o own_o word_n as_o translate_v by_o 936._o dr._n howel_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o world_n be_v it_o not_o strange_a say_v he_o that_o the_o hatred_n wherewith_o this_o name_n be_v pursue_v in_o such_o manner_n blind_v the_o mind_n of_o most_o man_n that_o when_o they_o witness_v the_o probity_n of_o a_o christian_a they_o mix_v in_o their_o discourse_n as_o a_o reproach_n that_o he_o have_v embrace_v this_o religion_n one_o say_v true_o he_o of_o who_o you_o speak_v be_v a_o honest_a man_n if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o christian_a and_o his_o life_n will_v be_v free_a from_o blame_n another_o do_v you_o know_v such_o a_o one_o who_o have_v the_o reputation_n of_o a_o wise_a and_o discreet_a man_n he_o be_v late_o turn_v christian._n again_o these_o people_n by_o a_o extreme_a blindness_n of_o hatred_n speak_v to_o the_o advantage_n of_o the_o name_n christian_n when_o they_o strive_v to_o render_v it_o odious_a for_o say_v they_o how_o pleasant_a and_o of_o what_o a_o good_a humour_n be_v that_o woman_n how_o sociable_a and_o jovial_a be_v that_o man_n it_o be_v pity_n they_o shall_v be_v christian_n so_o they_o impute_v the_o amendment_n of_o their_o life_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n some_o of_o they_o also_o purchase_v the_o aversion_n they_o carry_v against_o the_o name_n christian_n which_o we_o bear_v with_o the_o price_n of_o what_o be_v most_o precious_a to_o they_o rather_o desire_v to_o lose_v the_o sweetness_n of_o life_n tranquillity_n of_o mind_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o commodity_n than_o to_o see_v in_o their_o house_n that_o which_o they_o hate_v a_o man_n who_o heretofore_o have_v his_o mind_n full_a of_o jealousy_n can_v no_o long_o endure_v the_o company_n of_o his_o wife_n what_o assurance_n soever_o he_o have_v of_o her_o chastity_n after_o once_o he_o perceive_v she_o to_o be_v turn_v christian_a and_o part_n from_o she_o now_o when_o her_o action_n full_a of_o modesty_n have_v extinguish_v all_o suspicion_n wherewith_o he_o be_v heretofore_o move_v a_o father_n who_o of_o a_o long_a time_n endure_v the_o disobedience_n of_o his_o heathenish_a son_n resolve_v to_o take_v from_o he_o the_o hope_n of_o succeed_v he_o in_o his_o inheritance_n for_o turn_v christian_n when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n execute_v his_o command_n without_o murmur_v a_o master_n that_o use_v his_o slave_n gentle_o when_o his_o carriage_n give_v he_o some_o cause_n of_o distrust_n now_o put_v he_o far_o from_o he_o for_o be_v a_o christian_n when_o he_o have_v most_o assurance_n of_o his_o fidelity_n it_o be_v commit_v a_o crime_n to_o correct_v the_o disorder_n of_o a_o man_n life_n by_o the_o motion_n of_o a_o holy_a conversion_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o the_o good_a which_o be_v produce_v by_o so_o happy_a a_o change_n work_v not_o so_o powerful_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n as_o the_o hatred_n they_o have_v conceive_v against_o we_o indeed_o this_o hatred_n be_v strange_a and_o when_o i_o consider_v that_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n only_o make_v it_o be_v so_o i_o will_v willing_o know_v how_o a_o name_n can_v be_v criminal_a and_o how_o a_o simple_a word_n can_v be_v accuse_v thus_o be_v christianity_n whole_o infamous_a among_o the_o heathen_n contemn_v and_o detest_a by_o all_o and_o where_o lie_n be_v in_o credit_n calumny_n and_o slander_n confirm_v and_o back_v by_o authority_n there_o be_v no_o other_o crime_n but_o truth_n and_o it_o be_v these_o calumny_n these_o false_a accusation_n invent_v to_o cry_v down_o the_o christian_a religion_n oblige_v tertullian_n to_o write_v his_o apology_n wherein_o he_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n that_o christianity_n be_v nothing_o like_o that_o which_o the_o heathen_n imagine_v it_o to_o be_v that_o idolatry_n superstition_n impiety_n cruelty_n treachery_n conspiracy_n etc._n etc._n be_v none_o of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o condemn_v and_o detest_a by_o they_o that_o these_o crime_n be_v only_o the_o malicious_a invention_n of_o the_o heathenish_a priest_n who_o find_v themselves_o unable_a to_o withstand_v the_o force_n of_o christianity_n have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o in_o repute_n and_o the_o people_n in_o their_o error_n than_o by_o form_v a_o ugly_a odious_a and_o most_o horrid_a vizor_n a_o damnable_a scheme_n of_o religion_n than_o hold_v this_o forth_o to_o the_o world_n and_o cry_v out_o this_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o christian_n these_o be_v their_o principle_n behold_v their_o ignorance_n their_o stupidity_n their_o profaneness_n behold_v their_o insolence_n their_o villainy_n a_o people_n unsufferable_a in_o a_o commonwealth_n enemy_n to_o their_o country_n and_o their_o prince_n and_o thus_o represent_v it_o as_o monstrous_a as_o they_o please_v they_o bring_v a_o odium_fw-la upon_o as_o many_o as_o own_a that_o name_n and_o condemn_v they_o for_o folly_n and_o crime_n that_o be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o their_o own_o imagination_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o tertullia_n time_n that_o christianity_n lie_v under_o this_o scandal_n but_o also_o in_o after_o age_n and_o therefore_o as_o for_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o christian_a profession_n he_o be_v force_v to_o apologise_v for_o his_o time_n so_o do_v after_o he_o st._n cyprian_n arnobius_n and_o many_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n nay_o and_o under_o christian_a emperor_n the_o calumny_n of_o the_o heathen_n yet_o be_v urge_v with_o much_o vigour_n and_o confidence_n orosius_n be_v oblige_v to_o write_v his_o history_n and_o st._n augustine_n his_o city_n of_o god_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ._n and_o now_o when_o by_o the_o propagation_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o laborious_a endeavour_n of_o her_o professor_n heathenism_n be_v pretty_a well_o extinct_a yet_o be_v not_o the_o mouth_n of_o malice_n stop_v the_o same_o calumny_n which_o have_v be_v invent_v by_o the_o infidel_n be_v take_v up_o by_o evil_a christian_n no_o one_o go_v out_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o what_o do_v by_o revive_v old_a scandal_n and_o the_o addition_n of_o fresh_a one_o endeavour_v to_o make_v her_o infamous_a and_o blacken_v she_o with_o such_o crime_n as_o can_v be_v think_v most_o convenient_a for_o render_v her_o odious_a to_o all_o it_o be_v look_v upon_o by_o as_o many_o as_o ever_o go_v out_o of_o she_o the_o best_a mean_n to_o justify_v their_o separation_n and_o to_o gain_v to_o themselves_o the_o credit_n of_o orthodox_n christian_n to_o paint_v she_o out_o in_o all_o the_o antichristian_a colour_n and_o represent_v she_o as_o hellish_a as_o wickedness_n can_v make_v she_o it_o be_v strange_a how_o much_o she_o suffer_v in_o this_o point_n from_o the_o manichee_n and_o from_o the_o donatist_n and_o how_o much_o pain_n it_o cost_v saint_n augustine_n to_o prove_v their_o accusation_n to_o be_v mere_a calumny_n principal_o intend_v to_o raise_v prejudices_fw-la in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n against_o she_o that_o so_o be_v convince_v by_o these_o hellish_a artifices_fw-la of_o her_o teach_n unsound_a and_o profane_a doctrine_n wicked_a principle_n and_o humane_a invention_n instead_o of_o faith_n may_v never_o think_v of_o go_v to_o she_o to_o learn_v the_o truth_n nor_o even_o so_o much_o as_o suspect_v she_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ._n this_o saint_n augustine_n complain_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n of_o his_o continue_v in_o the_o error_n of_o the_o manichee_n so_o long_o and_o that_o he_o impugned_a with_o so_o much_o violence_n this_o church_n and_o therefore_o after_o he_o be_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n he_o discover_v this_o to_o the_o world_n for_o the_o undeceive_n other_o who_o be_v catch_v in_o the_o same_o snare_n make_v it_o part_v of_o his_o confession_n confess_v l._n 6._o c._n 3._o p._n 1._o when_o i_o come_v to_o discover_v say_v he_o that_o i_o mingle_a joy_n and_o blush_n and_o be_v ashamed_a that_o i_o have_v now_o for_o so_o many_o year_n be_v bark_v and_o rail_v not_o against_o the_o catholic_n faith_n but_o only_o against_o the_o fiction_n of_o my_o carnal_a conceit_n for_o so_o temerarious_a and_o impious_a be_v i_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o ought_v first_o to_o have_v learn_v from_o they_o by_o enquiry_n i_o first_o charge_v upon_o they_o by_o accusation_n ready_a to_o impose_v falsehood_n than_o to_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o thus_o i_o so_o blind_o accuse_v
other_o which_o be_v not_o fair_a and_o ingenuous_a as_o to_o the_o one_o he_o say_v he_o follow_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o their_o allow_a spiritual_a book_n and_o catechism_n and_o we_o find_v no_o fault_n with_o this_o but_o why_o must_v the_o other_o part_n then_o be_v draw_v by_o fancy_n or_o common_a prejudices_fw-la or_o ignorant_a mistake_v have_v we_o no_o rule_n whereby_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n be_v to_o be_v take_v be_v not_o our_o article_n as_o easy_a to_o be_v have_v and_o understand_v as_o the_o decree_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n i_o will_v not_o ask_v how_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n come_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n and_o measure_n of_o doctrine_n to_o any_o here_o where_o it_o be_v never_o receive_v but_o i_o hope_v i_o may_v why_o our_o representation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n as_o they_o from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n if_o he_o say_v his_o design_n be_v to_o remove_v common_a prejudices_fw-la and_o vulgar_a mistake_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o answer_v if_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n we_o utter_o disow_v they_o we_o know_v very_o well_o there_o be_v person_n who_o have_v so_o false_a a_o notion_n of_o popery_n that_o they_o charge_v the_o rite_n and_o custom_n of_o our_o church_n with_o it_o but_o we_o pity_v their_o weakness_n and_o folly_n and_o be_v far_o from_o defend_v such_o misrepresentation_n but_o that_o which_o we_o adhere_v to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o church_n as_o it_o be_v by_o law_n establish_v and_o what_o representation_n be_v make_v agreeable_a thereto_o i_o undertake_v to_o defend_v and_o no_o other_o but_o if_o a_o person_n take_v the_o liberty_n to_o lay_v on_o what_o colour_n he_o please_v on_o one_o side_n it_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o take_v they_o off_o in_o the_o other_o and_o then_o to_o say_v how_o much_o fair_a be_v our_o church_n than_o she_o be_v paint_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a but_o not_o so_o allowable_a a_o way_n of_o dispute_v for_o the_o same_o person_n to_o make_v the_o objection_n and_o answer_n too_o for_o he_o may_v so_o model_n and_o frame_v the_o argument_n by_o a_o little_a art_n that_o the_o answer_n may_v appear_v very_o full_a and_o sufficient_a whereas_o if_o they_o have_v be_v true_o represent_v they_o will_v be_v find_v very_o lame_a and_o defective_a 2._o he_o pretend_v to_o give_v a_o account_n why_o he_o quote_v no_o author_n for_o his_o misrepresentation_n which_o be_v very_o unsatisfactory_a viz._n that_o he_o have_v describe_v the_o papist_n therein_o exact_o accord_v to_o the_o apprehension_n he_o have_v of_o he_o when_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n but_o how_o can_v we_o tell_v what_o sort_n of_o protestant_n he_o be_v nor_o how_o well_o he_o be_v instruct_v in_o his_o religion_n and_o must_v the_o character_n now_o suppose_v to_o be_v common_a to_o protestant_n be_v take_v from_o his_o ignorant_a or_o childish_a or_o wilful_a mistake_v do_v ever_o any_o protestant_n that_o understand_v himself_o say_v that_o papist_n be_v never_o permit_v to_o hear_v sermon_n which_o they_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v or_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o commit_v idolatry_n or_o that_o a_o papist_n believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v his_o great_a god_n and_o to_o be_v far_o above_o all_o angel_n &_o c_o yet_o these_o be_v some_o of_o his_o misrepresentation_n do_v he_o in_o earnest_n think_v so_o himself_o if_o he_o do_v he_o give_v no_o good_a account_n of_o himself_o if_o he_o do_v not_o he_o give_v a_o worse_o for_o then_o how_o shall_v we_o believe_v he_o in_o other_o thing_n when_o he_o say_v he_o have_v draw_v his_o misrepresentation_n exact_o according_a to_o his_o own_o apprehension_n it_o be_v true_a he_o say_v he_o add_v some_o few_o point_n which_o be_v violent_o charge_v on_o he_o by_o his_o friend_n but_o we_o dare_v be_v bold_a to_o say_v these_o be_v none_o of_o they_o but_o let_v we_o suppose_v it_o true_a that_o he_o have_v such_o apprehension_n himself_o be_v these_o fit_a to_o be_v print_v as_o the_o character_n of_o a_o party_n what_o will_v they_o say_v to_o we_o if_o a_o spanish_a convert_n shall_v give_v a_o character_n of_o protestant_n according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n the_o people_n there_o have_v of_o they_o and_o set_v down_o in_o one_o column_n their_o monstrous_a misrepresentation_n and_o in_o another_o what_o he_o find_v they_o to_o be_v since_o his_o come_n hither_o and_o that_o in_o good_a truth_n he_o see_v they_o be_v just_a like_o other_o man_n but_o suppose_v he_o have_v false_a apprehension_n before_o he_o go_v among_o they_o why_o do_v he_o not_o take_v care_n to_o inform_v himself_o better_a before_o he_o change_v have_v he_o no_o friend_n no_o book_n no_o mean_n to_o rectify_v his_o mistake_v must_v he_o needs_o leave_v one_o church_n and_o go_v to_o another_o before_o he_o understand_v either_o if_o this_o be_v a_o true_a account_n of_o himself_o it_o be_v but_o a_o bad_a account_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o change_n iii_o the_o account_n he_o give_v of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o his_o character_n afford_v as_o little_a satisfaction_n for_o although_o in_o the_o general_n it_o be_v well_o that_o he_o pretend_v to_o keep_v to_o a_o rule_n 1._o he_o show_v no_o authority_n he_o have_v to_o interpret_v that_o rule_n in_o his_o own_o sense_n now_o several_a of_o his_o representation_n depend_v upon_o his_o own_o private_a sense_n and_o opinion_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o many_o other_o as_o zealous_a for_o the_o church_n as_o himself_o and_o what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o adhere_v to_o his_o representation_n rather_o than_o to_o they_o as_o for_o instance_n he_o say_v the_o pope_n personal_a infallibility_n be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o there_o be_v other_o say_v it_o be_v and_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o same_o promise_n which_o make_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n why_o now_o must_v we_o take_v his_o representation_n rather_o than_o they_o and_o so_o as_o to_o the_o depose_v power_n he_o grant_v it_o have_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o several_a pope_n and_o council_n too_o but_o that_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o who_o judgement_n be_v we_o to_o take_v in_o this_o matter_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o church_n a_o private_a man_n of_o no_o name_n no_o authority_n or_o of_o those_o pope_n and_o council_n who_o have_v declare_v it_o and_o act_v by_o it_o and_o can_v any_o man_n of_o their_o church_n justify_v our_o rely_v upon_o his_o word_n against_o the_o declaration_n of_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o suppose_v the_o question_n be_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o rule_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n tridentini_n what_o authority_n have_v he_o to_o declare_v it_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v express_o forbid_v all_o prelate_n to_o do_v it_o and_o reserve_v it_o to_o the_o apostolical_a see_v 2._o he_o leave_v out_o in_o the_o several_a particular_n a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o character_n of_o a_o papist_n since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n there_o define_v to_o be_v true_a but_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o this_o in_o his_o representation_n of_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o whole_a be_v manage_v as_o though_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o difference_n about_o some_o particular_a opinion_n whereas_o in_o truth_n the_o necessity_n of_o hold_v those_o doctrine_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n be_v the_o main_a point_n in_o difference_n if_o man_n have_v no_o mind_n to_o believe_v their_o own_o sense_n we_o know_v not_o how_o to_o help_v it_o but_o we_o think_v it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o be_v tell_v we_o can_v be_v save_v unless_o we_o renounce_v they_o too_o and_o this_o now_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o case_n since_o pius_n the_o 4_o the_o draw_v up_o and_o publish_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n wherein_o man_n be_v not_o only_o require_v to_o believe_v their_o tradition_n as_o firm_o as_o the_o bible_n the_o seven_o sacrament_n transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n worship_v of_o image_n indulgence_n supremacy_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o must_v believe_v that_o without_o believe_v these_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n for_o after_o the_o enumeration_n of_o those_o point_n it_o follow_v hanc_fw-la veram_fw-la catholicam_fw-la sidem_fw-la extra_fw-la quam_fw-la nemo_fw-la salvus_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o
true_a catholic_n faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v i._n e._n the_o belief_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v hereby_o declare_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o of_o any_o other_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v the_o subscribe_v this_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o require_v of_o all_o member_n of_o that_o church_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o he_o must_v declare_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o same_o faith_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v and_o this_o be_v as_o much_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o trent_n can_v make_v it_o and_o it_o be_v now_o print_v in_o the_o roman_a ritual_a at_o paris_n set_v forth_o by_o paul_n the_o 5_o the_o as_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n own_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a representation_n as_o to_o the_o doctrinal_a point_n but_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o 35_o the_o head_n he_o than_o own_v that_o unless_o man_n do_v believe_v every_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n they_o can_v be_v save_v and_o he_o that_o disbelieve_v one_o do_v in_o a_o manner_n disbelieve_v all_o which_o may_v as_o well_o reach_v those_o who_o disow_v the_o depose_v power_n and_o the_o pope_n personal_a infallibility_n as_o we_o since_o those_o be_v account_v article_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o roll_a part_n of_o their_o church_n to_o who_o it_o chief_o belong_v to_o declare_v they_o and_o the_o former_a have_v be_v define_v both_o by_o pope_n and_o council_n 3._o he_o never_o set_v down_o what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v any_o doctrine_n to_o become_v a_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n we_o be_v often_o blame_v for_o charge_v particular_a opinion_n upon_o their_o church_n but_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o it_o be_v which_o make_v a_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n i._n e._n whether_o frequent_a and_o public_a declaration_n by_o the_o head_n and_o guide_n of_o their_o church_n be_v sufficient_a or_o not_o to_o that_o end_n our_o author_n seem_v to_o imply_v the_o necessity_n of_o some_o condition_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o beside_o the_o pope_n authority_n he_o require_v due_a circumstance_n and_o proceed_v according_a to_o law_n but_o who_o be_v to_o be_v judge_n of_o these_o circumstance_n and_o legal_a proceed_n and_o he_o never_o tell_v what_o these_o circumstance_n be_v and_o yet_o after_o all_o he_o say_v the_o order_n of_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v whether_o he_o be_v infallible_a or_o not_o and_o this_o now_o bring_v the_o matter_n home_o the_o pope_n he_o confess_v have_v own_v the_o depose_v doctrine_n and_o act_v according_a to_o it_o and_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v their_o order_n whether_o infallible_a or_o not_o and_o consequent_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n to_o act_v when_o the_o pope_n shall_v require_v it_o according_a to_o the_o depose_v power_n but_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v in_o this_o case_n that_o a_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o their_o number_n for_o say_v he_o there_o be_v great_a number_n that_o disow_v this_o doctrine_n i_o will_v not_o at_o present_a dispute_n it_o but_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v inform_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n go_v by_o majority_n of_o vote_n or_o not_o i_o have_v think_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o have_v overbalance_v any_o number_n of_o dissenter_n for_o what_o be_v those_o who_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o dictate_v of_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o dissenter_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o distinction_n of_o the_o court_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a in_o this_o case_n for_o we_o here_o consider_v not_o the_o mere_a temporal_a power_n which_o make_v the_o court_n but_o the_o spiritual_a capacity_n of_o teach_v the_o church_n and_o if_o pope_n and_o council_n may_v err_v in_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n why_o not_o in_o any_o other_o i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o that_o say_v universal_a tradition_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o doctrine_n ●f_n their_o church_n but_o then_o no_o submission_n can_v be_v require_v to_o any_o doctrine_n in_o that_o church_n till_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o it_o in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v prove_v and_o we_o need_v to_o desire_v no_o better_a term_n than_o these_o as_o to_o all_o point_n of_o pope_n pius_n the_o 4_o the_o his_o creed_n which_o be_v in_o dispute_n between_o we_o and_o they_o 4._o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o particular_a divine_n as_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o church_n when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o of_o great_a authority_n against_o they_o whereas_o if_o we_o proceed_v by_o his_o own_o rule_n the_o great_a number_n be_v to_o carry_v it_o therefore_o we_o can_v be_v think_v to_o misrepresent_v they_o if_o we_o charge_v they_o with_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v own_v either_o by_o the_o general_a and_o allow_v practice_n of_o their_o church_n or_o their_o public_a office_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o their_o divine_n and_o casuist_n or_o in_o case_n of_o a_o contest_v with_o that_o side_n which_o be_v own_v by_o the_o guide_n of_o their_o church_n when_o the_o other_o be_v censure_v or_o which_o be_v approve_v by_o their_o canonize_v saint_n or_o declare_v by_o their_o pope_n and_o council_n who_o decree_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o follow_v and_o by_o these_o measure_n i_o intend_v to_o proceed_v have_v no_o design_n to_o misrepresent_v they_o as_o indeed_o we_o need_v not_o and_o so_o much_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o introduction_n a_o papist_n misrepresent_v and_o represent_v i._o of_o pray_v to_o image_n a_o papist_n misrepresent_v worship_n stock_n and_o stone_n for_o go_n he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n but_o set_v up_o picture_n and_o image_n of_o christ_n the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o his_o saint_n he_o pray_v to_o they_o and_o put_v his_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o they_o much_o like_a as_o the_o heathen_n do_v in_o their_o wooden_a god_n jupiter_n mars_n venus_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o this_o reason_n he_o erect_v stately_a monument_n to_o they_o in_o his_o church_n adorn_v they_o sumptuous_o burn_v candle_n offer_v incense_n and_o frequent_o fall_v down_o prostrate_a before_o they_o and_o with_o his_o eye_n fix_v on_o they_o cry_v out_o help_v i_o mary_n assist_v i_o anthony_n remember_v i_o ignatius_n a_o papist_n represent_v believe_v it_o damnable_a to_o worship_n stock_n and_o stone_n for_o god_n to_o pray_v to_o picture_n or_o image_n of_o christ_n the_o virgin_n mary_n or_o any_o other_o saint_n as_o also_o to_o put_v any_o trust_n or_o confidence_n in_o they_o he_o keep_v they_o by_o he_o indeed_o to_o preserve_v in_o his_o mind_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o thing_n represent_v by_o they_o as_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o preserve_v the_o memory_n of_o their_o decease_a friend_n by_o keep_v their_o picture_n he_o be_v teach_v to_o use_v they_o by_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o the_o picture_n or_o image_n and_o thence_o to_o raise_v his_o heart_n to_o the_o prototype_n and_o there_o to_o employ_v it_o in_o meditation_n love_n thanksgiving_n imitation_n etc._n etc._n as_o the_o object_n require_v as_o many_o good_a christian_n place_v a_o death-head_n before_o they_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o take_v occasion_n to_o reflect_v often_o upon_o their_o last_o end_n in_o order_n to_o their_o better_a prepare_v for_o it_o or_o by_o see_v old_a time_n paint_v with_o his_o forelock_a hourglass_n and_o scythe_n turn_v their_o thought_n upon_o the_o swiftness_n of_o time_n and_o that_o whosoever_o neglect_v the_o present_a be_v in_o danger_n of_o beginning_n then_o to_o lay_v hold_n when_o there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o come_v these_o picture_n or_o image_n have_v this_o advantage_n that_o they_o inform_v the_o mind_n by_o one_o glance_n of_o what_o in_o read_v require_v a_o chapter_n and_o sometime_o a_o volume_n there_o be_v no_o other_o difference_n between_o they_o than_o that_o read_n represent_v leisurely_o and_o by_o degree_n and_o a_o picture_n all_o at_o once_o hence_o he_o find_v a_o convenience_n in_o say_v his_o prayer_n with_o some_o devout_a picture_n before_o he_o he_o be_v no_o soon_o distract_v but_o the_o sight_n of_o these_o recall_v his_o wander_a thought_n to_o the_o right_a object_n and_o as_o certain_o bring_v something_o good_a into_o his_o mind_n as_o a_o immodest_a picture_n disturb_v his_o heart_n with_o naughtiness_n and_o because_o he_o be_v sensible_a that_o these_o holy_a picture_n and_o image_n represent_v and_o
his_o concern_v it_o shall_v be_v determine_v for_o his_o part_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n but_o that_o god_n who_o acquaint_v the_o prophet_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v many_o hundred_o year_n after_o that_o inform_v elijah_n of_o the_o king_n of_o syria_n counsel_n though_o private_a resolve_v on_o in_o his_o bedchamber_n and_o at_o a_o distance_n 2_o kings_z 6.12_o can_v never_o want_v mean_n of_o let_v the_o saint_n know_v the_o desire_n of_o those_o who_o beg_v their_o intercession_n here_o on_o earth_n especial_o since_o our_o saviour_n tell_v that_o abraham_n hear_v the_o petition_n of_o dives_n who_o be_v yet_o at_o a_o great_a distance_n even_o in_o hell_n and_o tell_v he_o likewise_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o live_n while_o as_o yet_o on_o earth_n nay_o since_o it_o be_v general_o allow_v that_o even_o the_o very_a devil_n hear_v those_o desperate_a wretch_n who_o call_v on_o they_o why_o shall_v he_o doubt_v that_o saint_n want_v this_o privilege_n in_o some_o manner_n grant_v to_o sinful_a man_n and_o to_o wicked_a spirit_n who_o though_o depart_v this_o life_n be_v not_o so_o proper_o dead_a as_o translate_v from_o a_o mortal_a life_n to_o a_o immortal_a one_o where_o enjoy_v god_n almighty_a they_o lose_v no_o perfection_n which_o they_o enjoy_v while_o on_o earth_n but_o possess_v all_o in_o a_o more_o eminent_a manner_n have_v more_o charity_n more_o love_n and_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o ever_o become_v like_o angel_n and_o as_o these_o offer_v up_o their_o prayer_n for_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n zach._n 1.12_o so_o undoubted_o they_o likewise_o fall_v down_o before_o the_o lamb_n have_v every_o one_o of_o they_o harp_n and_o golden_a vial_n full_a of_o odour_n which_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n apoc._n 5.8_o ii_o of_o worship_a saint_n for_o the_o clear_a state_v this_o controversy_n these_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v premise_v 1._o we_o do_v not_o charge_v they_o that_o they_o make_v god_n of_o dead_a man_n i._n e._n that_o they_o believe_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v independent_a deity_n for_o this_o our_o author_n confess_v be_v a_o most_o damnable_a idolatry_n 2._o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o dead_a man_n be_v as_o bad_a as_o heathenism_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o true_a saint_n and_o martyr_n to_o have_v be_v not_o only_o good_a and_o virtuous_a but_o extraordinary_a person_n in_o great_a favour_n with_o god_n and_o high_o deserve_v our_o esteem_n and_o reverence_n as_o well_o as_o imitation_n whereas_o the_o heathen_a deify_v man_n be_v vile_a and_o wicked_a man_n and_o deserve_v not_o the_o common_a esteem_n of_o mankind_n according_a to_o the_o account_n themselves_o give_v of_o they_o and_o we_o own_o the_o common_a doctrine_n and_o advantage_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o they_o do_v allow_v some_o external_a act_n of_o worship_n to_o be_v so_o proper_a to_o god_n alone_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v give_v to_o none_o else_o beside_o he_o and_o this_o they_o call_v latria_n and_o we_o shall_v never_o dispute_v with_o they_o about_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o a_o word_n when_o the_o sense_n be_v agree_v unless_o they_o draw_v inference_n from_o it_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v to_o this_o latria_n they_o refer_v not_o only_a sacrifice_n but_o all_o that_o relate_v to_o it_o as_o temple_n altar_n and_o priest_n so_o that_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n to_o make_v these_o immediate_o and_o proper_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o any_o saint_n be_v to_o make_v a_o god_n of_o that_o saint_n and_o to_o commit_v idolatry_n 4._o they_o confess_v that_o to_o pray_v to_o saint_n to_o bestow_v spiritual_a or_o temporal_a gift_n upon_o we_o be_v to_o give_v to_o they_o the_o worship_n proper_a to_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a giver_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n for_o else_o i_o do_v not_o understand_v why_o they_o shall_v take_v so_o much_o pain_n to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o whatever_o the_o form_n of_o their_o prayer_n and_o hymn_n be_v yet_o the_o intention_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n be_v only_o to_o desire_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o to_o obtain_v thng_n for_o we_o by_o their_o intercession_n with_o god_n but_o two_o thing_n can_v be_v deny_v by_o they_o 1._o that_o they_o do_v use_v solemn_a invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o place_n of_o divine_a worship_n at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o make_v their_o address_n to_o god_n himself_o with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o external_n adoration_n with_o bend_a knee_n and_o eye_n lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o that_o this_o practice_n be_v according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o not_o only_o decree_v a_o humble_a invocation_n of_o they_o but_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v impiety_n to_o condemn_v mental_a and_o vocal_a supplication_n to_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n 25._o 2._o that_o they_o do_v own_o make_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v their_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n but_o not_o of_o redemption_n although_o christ_n be_v our_o mediator_n in_o both_o sense_n and_o upon_o these_o two_o point_n this_o controversy_n depend_v let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o our_o representer_n say_v to_o they_o 1._o his_o church_n teach_v he_o indeed_o and_o he_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a to_o desire_v the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n but_o that_o they_o be_v either_o god_n or_o his_o redeemer_n he_o be_v no_o where_o teach_v but_o detest_v all_o such_o doctrine_n there_o be_v two_o way_n of_o desire_a intercession_n of_o other_o for_o we_o 1._o by_o way_n of_o friendly_a request_n as_o a_o act_n of_o mutual_a charity_n and_o so_o no_o doubt_n we_o may_v desire_v other_o here_o on_o earth_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o 2._o by_o way_n of_o humble_a supplication_n with_o all_o the_o external_a act_n of_o adoration_n and_o we_o can_v think_v st._n peter_n or_o st._n paul_n who_o refuse_v any_o thing_n like_o adoration_n from_o man_n will_v have_v be_v please_v to_o have_v see_v man_n fall_v down_o upon_o their_o knee_n before_o they_o and_o in_o the_o same_o posture_n of_o devotion_n in_o which_o they_o be_v pray_v to_o almighty_a god_n to_o put_v their_o name_n into_o the_o middle_n of_o their_o litany_n and_o so_o pray_v they_o then_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o how_o be_v we_o sure_a that_o their_o church_n teach_v no_o more_o than_o this_o i_o have_v read_v over_o and_o over_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o roman_a catechism_n about_o it_o and_o i_o can_v find_v no_o such_o limitation_n of_o their_o sense_n there_o where_o if_o any_o where_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v find_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n mention_n both_o the_o prayer_n and_o the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o they_o be_v to_o fly_v to_o if_o this_o help_n and_o assistance_n be_v no_o more_o than_o their_o prayer_n why_o be_v it_o mention_v as_o distinct_a why_o be_v their_o reign_v together_o with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n speak_v of_o but_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v they_o have_v a_o power_n to_o help_n and_o assist_v for_o what_o be_v their_o reign_v to_o their_o pray_v for_o we_o but_o i_o have_v a_o further_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o council_n mean_v more_o viz._n the_o council_n know_v the_o common_a practice_n and_o form_n of_o invocation_n then_o use_v and_o allow_v and_o the_o general_a opinion_n that_o the_o saint_n have_v power_n to_o help_n and_o assist_v those_o who_o pray_v to_o they_o if_o the_o council_n do_v not_o approve_v this_o why_o do_v it_o insert_v the_o very_a word_n upon_o which_o that_o practice_n be_v ground_v they_o likewise_o very_o well_o know_v the_o complaint_n which_o have_v be_v make_v of_o these_o thing_n and_o some_o of_o their_o own_o communion_n cry_v shame_n upon_o some_o of_o their_o hymn_n wicelius_n say_v one_o of_o they_o abusuum_fw-la salve_fw-la regina_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v full_a of_o downright_a impiety_n and_o horrible_a superstition_n and_o that_o other_o be_v whole_o inexcusable_a lud._n vives_n have_v say_v he_o find_v little_a difference_n in_o the_o people_n opinion_n of_o their_o saint_n in_o many_o thing_n 27._o from_o what_o the_o heathen_n have_v of_o their_o go_n these_o thing_n be_v know_v and_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o have_v redress_v they_o by_o declare_v what_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o council_n be_v and_o that_o whatever_o form_n be_v use_v no_o more_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o they_o but_o pray_v to_o they_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o beside_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o very_a same_o
the_o testimony_n or_o evidence_n of_o sense_n or_o reason_n in_o this_o case_n from_o some_o parallel_a instance_n as_o he_o think_v 1._o he_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n make_v his_o word_n good_a pronounce_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n real_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o his_o apostle_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v by_o his_o powerful_a word_n change_v into_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o species_n only_o or_o accident_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v as_o before_o the_o same_o he_o believe_v of_o the_o eucharist_n consecrate_v now_o by_o priest_n this_o be_v a_o very_a easy_a way_n of_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o word_n be_v clear_a for_o transubstantiation_n and_o from_o no_o better_a ground_n to_o fly_v to_o god_n omnipotency_n to_o make_v it_o good_a be_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v suppose_v christ_n real_o to_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o rock_n a_o vine_n a_o door_n because_o the_o word_n be_v every_o jot_n as_o clear_v and_o then_o call_v in_o god_n omnipotency_n which_o be_v as_o effectual_a to_o make_v they_o good_a i_o confess_v these_o word_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v clear_a to_o i_o for_o transubstantiation_n that_o if_o i_o have_v never_o hear_v of_o it_o i_o shall_v never_o have_v think_v of_o it_o from_o these_o or_o any_o other_o word_n of_o scripture_n i.e._n not_o bare_o consider_v the_o sound_n of_o word_n but_o the_o eastern_a idiom_n of_o speak_v the_o circumstance_n of_o our_o saviour_n real_a body_n at_o that_o time_n when_o he_o speak_v they_o the_o uncouth_a way_n of_o feed_v on_o christ_n real_a body_n without_o any_o objection_n make_v against_o it_o by_o his_o disciple_n the_o key_n our_o saviour_n elsewhere_o give_v for_o understand_v the_o manner_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o withal_o if_o these_o word_n be_v literal_o and_o strict_o understand_v they_o must_v make_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o be_v christ_n body_n for_o that_o be_v unavoidable_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n for_o can_v any_o man_n take_v this_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n but_o this_o bread_n who_o attend_v to_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o word_n and_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o interpretation_n yet_o this_o sense_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v allow_v for_o then_o all_o that_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o these_o word_n be_v that_o when_o christ_n speak_v these_o word_n the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n but_o either_o christ_n mean_v the_o bread_n by_o this_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v the_o former_a proposition_n be_v unavoidable_a in_o the_o literal_a sense_n if_o he_o do_v not_o then_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n the_o bread_n can_v never_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o that_o only_o can_v be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v mean_v when_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v as_o plain_a and_o convince_a as_o any_o demonstration_n in_o euclid_n which_o have_v often_o make_v i_o wonder_v at_o those_o who_o talk_v so_o confident_o of_o the_o plain_a letter_n of_o scripture_n be_v for_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o several_a divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v themselves_o better_a and_o have_v confess_v that_o this_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v late_o do_v already_o it_o be_v enough_o here_o to_o observe_v that_o vasquez_n confess_v it_o of_o scotus_n 5._o durandus_fw-la paludanus_n ockam_n cameracensis_n and_o himself_o yield_v that_o they_o do_v not_o and_o can_v signify_v express_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o how_o can_v this_o be_v my_o body_n literal_o signify_v this_o be_v change_v into_o my_o body_n if_o that_o proposition_n be_v literal_o true_a this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o overthrow_v the_o change_n for_o how_o can_v a_o thing_n be_v change_v into_o that_o which_o it_o be_v already_o 2._o he_o believe_v christ_n be_v equal_a to_o his_o father_n in_o truth_n and_o omnipotency_n can_v make_v his_o word_n good_a we_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o dispute_v christ_n omnipotency_n but_o we_o may_v their_o familiar_a way_n of_o make_v use_n of_o it_o to_o help_v they_o out_o when_o sense_n and_o reason_n fail_v they_o and_o therefore_o cajetan_n well_o say_v 3._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o dispute_v about_o god_n absolute_a power_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v thing_n of_o such_o constant_a use_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a thing_n to_o attribute_v to_o the_o sacrament_n all_o that_o god_n can_v do_v but_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o he_o say_v against_o sense_n and_o reason_n for_o the_o believe_v this_o mystery_n he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o think_v it_o meet_v for_o any_o christian_n to_o appeal_v from_o christ_n word_n to_o his_o own_o sense_n or_o reason_n for_o the_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v but_o rather_o to_o submit_v his_o sense_n and_o reason_n to_o christ_n word_n in_o the_o obsequiousness_n of_o faith_n what!_o whether_o we_o know_v this_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n or_o not_o and_o thus_o we_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o every_o absurd_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n because_o we_o must_v not_o use_v our_o sense_n or_o reason_n for_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o be_v say_v there_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v plain_o say_v in_o scripture_n than_o that_o god_n have_v eye_n and_o ear_n and_o hand_n must_v now_o every_o man_n yield_v to_o this_o in_o the_o obsequiousness_n of_o faith_n without_o examine_v it_o by_o principle_n of_o common_a reason_n and_o we_o think_v we_o be_v therefore_o bind_v to_o put_v another_o sense_n upon_o those_o expression_n because_o they_o imply_v a_o repugnancy_n to_o the_o divine_a perfection_n why_o not_o then_o where_o something_o be_v imply_v which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o well_o as_o to_o our_o sense_n but_o the_o question_n about_o judge_v in_o this_o matter_n by_o our_o sense_n be_v not_o as_o our_o author_n be_v willing_a to_o suppose_v viz._n whether_o our_o sense_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v against_o a_o clear_a and_o express_v divine_a revelation_n but_o whether_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o for_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o this_o revelation_n and_o we_o think_v there_o be_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o 1._o because_o we_o have_v no_o more_o certain_a way_n of_o judge_v the_o substance_n of_o a_o body_n than_o by_o our_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o say_v our_o sense_n go_v beyond_o the_o accident_n but_o we_o say_v our_o sense_n by_o those_o accident_n do_v assure_v we_o of_o the_o bodily_a substance_n or_o else_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n 2._o because_o christ_n do_v himself_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o disciple_n sense_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o own_o body_n after_o the_o resurrection_n behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n that_o it_o be_v i_o myself_o 24.39_o handle_v and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v now_o we_o think_v we_o have_v reason_n to_o allow_v the_o same_o criterion_n which_o christ_n himself_o do_v about_o the_o very_a same_o body_n unless_o he_o have_v then_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o there_o be_v to_o be_v another_o supernatural_a manner_n of_o existence_n of_o the_o same_o body_n concern_v which_o their_o sense_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n 3._o some_o of_o the_o most_o important_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n do_v suppose_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o sense_n to_o be_v true_a as_o about_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n whether_o he_o have_v real_o a_o body_n or_o only_o the_o outward_a accident_n and_o appearance_n of_o a_o body_n if_o he_o have_v not_o he_o do_v not_o real_o suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o so_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o propitiation_n there_o offer_v up_o to_o the_o father_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n be_v lose_v there_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n in_o st._n john_n time_n and_o afterward_o whether_o christ_n have_v any_o real_a body_n those_o who_o deny_v it_o bring_v revelation_n for_o it_o those_o who_o assert_v it_o prove_v it_o by_o their_o sense_n as_o s._n john_n himself_o 3._o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o our_o hand_n have_v handle_v etc._n etc._n he_o do_v not_o tell_v man_n they_o must_v submit_v their_o sense_n and_o reason_n to_o the_o pretence_n of_o revelation_n but_o they_o ought_v to_o
call_v he_o to_o any_o account_n for_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v do_v although_o he_o shall_v chance_v to_o die_v without_o the_o least_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o repentance_n for_o his_o sin_n he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a to_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o power_n in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n can_v give_v he_o leave_v to_o commit_v any_o sin_n whatsoever_o or_o that_o for_o any_o sum_n of_o money_n he_o can_v obtain_v a_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n for_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o be_v commit_v by_o he_o or_o his_o heir_n hereafter_o he_o firm_o believe_v that_o no_o sin_n can_v be_v forgive_v but_o by_o a_o true_a and_o hearty_a repentance_n but_o that_o still_o there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o the_o church_n of_o grant_v indulgence_n which_o concern_v not_o at_o all_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n either_o mortal_a or_o venial_a but_o only_o of_o some_o temporal_a punishment_n remain_v due_a after_o the_o gild_n be_v remit_v so_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mitigation_n or_o relaxation_n upon_o just_a cause_n of_o canonical_a penance_n which_o be_v or_o may_v be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n on_o penitent_a sinner_n according_a to_o their_o several_a degree_n of_o demerit_n and_o this_o he_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o judiciary_n power_n leave_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v whereby_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o erect_v a_o court_n of_o conscience_n to_o assign_v penalty_n or_o release_v they_o as_o circumstance_n shall_v reguire_v and_o this_o authority_n he_o know_v s._n paul_n plain_o own_a 2_o cor._n 2.6_o where_o he_o decree_v a_o penance_n sufficient_a say_v he_o to_o such_o a_o man_n be_v this_o punishment_n and_o 2_o cor._n 2.10_o where_o he_o release_v one_o for_o your_o sake_n speak_v of_o the_o penance_n enjoin_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a i_o forgive_v it_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ._n and_o what_o money_n there_o be_v give_v at_o any_o time_n on_o this_o account_n concern_v not_o at_o all_o the_o pope_n coffer_n but_o be_v by_o every_o one_o give_v as_o they_o please_v either_o to_o the_o poor_a to_o the_o sick_a to_o prisoner_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o they_o judge_v it_o most_o charity_n and_o though_o he_o acknowledge_v many_o abuse_n have_v be_v commit_v in_o grant_v and_o gain_v indulgence_n through_o the_o default_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n yet_o he_o can_v imagine_v how_o these_o can_v in_o justice_n be_v charge_v upon_o the_o church_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o her_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n especial_o since_o she_o have_v be_v so_o careful_a in_o the_o retrench_a they_o as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o what_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n dec._n de_fw-fr indulg_n cum_fw-la potestas_fw-la viii_o of_o indulgence_n 1._o they_o must_v be_v extreme_o ignorant_a who_o take_v the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n to_o be_v a_o leave_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o commit_v what_o sin_n they_o please_v and_o that_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o they_o shall_v escape_v punishment_n for_o their_o sin_n without_o repentance_n in_o another_o world_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o misrepresentation_n which_o he_o say_v be_v make_v of_o it_o and_o if_o he_o say_v true_a in_o his_o preface_n that_o he_o have_v describe_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o papist_n exact_o according_a to_o the_o apprehension_n he_o have_v when_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n he_o show_v how_o well_o he_o understand_v the_o matter_n in_o difference_n when_o i_o think_v no_o other_o person_n beside_o himself_o ever_o have_v such_o a_o apprehension_n of_o it_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o scholar_n 2._o but_o now_o he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a to_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o power_n in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n can_v give_v he_o leave_v to_o commit_v any_o sin_n whatsoever_o or_o that_o for_o any_o sum_n of_o money_n he_o can_v obtain_v any_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n for_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o be_v commit_v by_o he_o or_o his_o heir_n hereafter_o very_o well_o but_o what_o think_v he_o of_o obtain_v a_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_v after_o they_o be_v commit_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v obtain_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n he_o can_v but_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o tax_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chamber_n for_o several_a sin_n and_o what_o sum_n be_v there_o set_v upon_o they_o why_o do_v he_o not_o as_o free_o speak_v against_o this_o this_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o vast_a collection_n of_o tract_n of_o canon_n law_n 368._o set_v forth_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n where_o there_o be_v certain_a rate_n for_o perjury_n murder_n apostasy_n etc._n etc._n now_o what_o do_v these_o sum_n of_o money_n mean_a if_o they_o be_v small_a it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o better_a bargain_n for_o the_o sin_n be_v very_o great_a and_o espencaeus_fw-la complain_v 2._o that_o this_o book_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v call_v in_o that_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n legate_n rener_v those_o faculty_n and_o confirm_v they_o it_o seem_v then_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n may_v be_v of_o some_o consequence_n towards_o the_o obtain_n pardon_n for_o a_o sin_n past_a though_o not_o for_o a_o licence_n to_o commit_v it_o but_o what_o mighty_a difference_n be_v there_o whether_o a_o man_n procure_v with_o money_n a_o dispensation_n or_o a_o pardon_n for_o the_o sin_n can_v hurt_v he_o no_o more_o than_o if_o he_o have_v licence_n to_o commit_v it_o 3._o he_o do_v believe_v there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o the_o church_n to_o grant_v indulgence_n which_o he_o say_v concern_v not_o at_o all_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n either_o mortal_a or_o venial_a but_o only_o of_o some_o temporal_a punishment_n remain_v due_a after_o the_o gild_n be_v remit_v here_o now_o arise_v a_o material_a question_n viz._n whether_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o representer_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v believe_v if_o the_o pope_n who_o grant_v the_o indulgence_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v than_o not_o only_o the_o bare_a remission_n of_o sin_n be_v concern_v in_o they_o but_o the_o plenary_a and_o most_o plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v have_v by_o they_o so_o boniface_n the_o 8_o the_o in_o his_o bull_n of_o jubilee_n grant_v non_fw-la solum_fw-la plenam_fw-la &_o largiorem_fw-la imo_fw-la plenissimam_fw-la veniam_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la if_o these_o word_n have_v no_o relation_n to_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o people_n be_v horrible_o cheat_v by_o the_o sound_n of_o they_o in_o the_o bull_n of_o clement_n the_o 6_o the_o not_o extant_a in_o the_o bullarium_fw-la 204._o but_o publish_v out_o of_o the_o vtrecht_n manuscript_n not_o only_o a_o plenary_a absolution_n from_o all_o sin_n be_v declare_v to_o all_o person_n who_o die_v in_o the_o way_n to_o rome_n but_o he_o command_v the_o angel_n of_o paradise_n to_o carry_v the_o soul_n immediate_o to_o heaven_n and_o i_o suppose_v whatever_o imply_v such_o a_o absolution_n as_o carry_v a_o soul_n to_o heaven_n 80._o do_v concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n boniface_n ix_o grant_v indulgence_n à_fw-la poenâ_fw-la &_o à_fw-la culpâ_fw-la and_o those_o certain_o concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o bare_o from_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n but_o from_o the_o gild_n itself_o clement_n viii_o who_o bellarmine_n magnify_v for_o his_o care_n in_o reform_v indulgence_n in_o his_o bull_n of_o jubilee_n grant_v a_o most_o plenary_a remission_n of_o sin_n and_o vrban_a the_o 8_o the_o since_o he_o not_o only_o a_o relaxation_n of_o penance_n but_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o late_o as_o a._n d._n 1671._o clement_n the_o 10_o the_o publish_v a_o indulgence_n upon_o the_o canonization_n of_o five_o new_a saint_n wherein_o he_o not_o only_o grant_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n of_o sin_n but_o upon_o invocation_n of_o one_o of_o these_o saint_n in_o the_o point_n of_o death_n a_o plenary_a indulgence_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o what_o do_v this_o signify_v in_o the_o point_n of_o death_n if_o it_o do_v not_o concern_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 4._o indulgence_n he_o say_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mitigation_n or_o relaxation_n upon_o just_a cause_n of_o canonical_a penance_n which_o be_v or_o may_v be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n on_o penitent_a senner_n according_a to_o their_o several_a degree_n of_o demerit_n if_o by_o canonical_a penance_n they_o mean_v those_o enjoin_v by_o the_o penitential_a canon_n greg._n de_fw-fr valentia_n say_v this_o opinion_n differ_v not_o from_o that_o of_o the_o heretic_n 7._o and_o make_v indulgence_n to_o be_v useless_a and_o dangerous_a thing_n bellarmin_n bring_v several_a argument_n against_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v prove_v
to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o indulgence_n 2._o they_o will_v be_v rather_o hurtful_a than_o profitable_a and_o the_o church_n will_v deceive_v her_o child_n by_o they_o 3._o they_o can_v not_o be_v grant_v for_o the_o dead_a 2._o 4._o they_o who_o receive_v indulgence_n do_v undergo_v canonical_a penance_n 5._o the_o form_n of_o they_o do_v express_v that_o they_o do_v relate_v to_o god_n &_o not_o only_o to_o the_o church_n and_o this_o i_o think_v be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o true_a represent_v the_o nature_n of_o indulgence_n for_o we_o do_v not_o dispute_v the_o church_n power_n in_o relax_v canonical_a penance_n to_o penitent_a sinner_n upon_o just_a cause_n ix_o of_o satisfaction_n he_o believe_v very_o injurious_o of_o christ_n passion_n be_v persuade_v that_o his_o suffering_n &_o death_n be_v not_o sufficient_o satisfactory_a for_o our_o sin_n but_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o one_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o themselves_o and_o for_o this_o end_n after_o he_o have_v be_v at_o confession_n the_o priest_n enjoin_v he_o a_o penance_n by_o the_o performance_n of_o which_o he_o be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o his_o offence_n and_o thus_o confident_o rely_v upon_o his_o own_o penitential_a work_n he_o utter_o evacuate_v christ_n passion_n and_o though_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o christian_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v his_o saviour_n yet_o by_o his_o little_a trust_n to_o he_o he_o seem_v to_o think_v he_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o what_o his_o crucifix_n inform_v he_o that_o be_v a_o mere_a wooden_a one_o he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a to_o think_v injurious_o of_o christ_n passion_n nevertheless_o he_o believe_v that_o though_o condign_a satisfaction_n for_o the_o gild_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o pain_n eternal_a due_n to_o it_o be_v proper_a only_o to_o christ_n our_o saviour_n yet_o that_o penitent_a sinner_n be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n and_o make_v his_o member_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n satisfy_v by_o prayer_n fast_v alm_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n which_o by_o order_n of_o god_n justice_n sometime_o remain_v due_a after_o the_o gild_n and_o the_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v so_o that_o trust_v in_o christ_n as_o his_o redeemer_n he_o yet_o do_v not_o think_v that_o by_o christ_n suffering_n every_o christian_a be_v discharge_v of_o his_o particular_a suffering_n but_o that_o every_o one_o be_v to_o suffer_v something_o for_o himself_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v who_o by_o tribulation_n and_o in_o suffer_v in_o his_o own_o flesh_n do_v accomplish_v those_o thing_n that_o want_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o not_o only_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n col._n 1.24_o and_o this_o he_o find_v every_o where_o in_o scripture_n viz._n people_n admonish_v of_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n do_v penance_n in_o fast_v sackcloth_n and_o ash_n and_o by_o voluntary_a austerity_n endeavour_v to_o satisfy_v the_o divine_a justice_n and_o these_o personal_a satisfaction_n god_n have_v sufficient_o also_o mind_v he_o of_o in_o the_o punishment_n of_o moses_n aaron_n david_n and_o infinite_a other_o and_o even_o in_o the_o affliction_n send_v by_o god_n upon_o our_o own_o age_n in_o flague_n war_n fire_n persecution_n rebellion_n and_o such_o like_a which_o few_o be_v so_o atheistical_a but_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v send_v from_o heaven_n for_o the_o just_a chastisement_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o which_o we_o be_v to_o undergo_v notwithstanding_o the_o infinite_a satisfaction_n make_v by_o christ_n and_o without_o any_o undervalue_v it_o now_o be_v thus_o convince_v of_o some_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v due_a to_o his_o sin_n he_o accept_v of_o all_o tribulation_n whether_o in_o body_n name_n or_o estate_n from_o whence-soev_a they_o come_v and_o with_o other_o of_o his_o own_o choose_n offer_v they_o up_o to_o god_n for_o the_o discharge_n this_o debt_n still_o confess_v that_o his_o offence_n deserve_v yet_o more_o but_o these_o penitential_a work_n he_o be_v teach_v to_o be_v no_o otherwise_o satisfactory_a than_o as_o join_v and_o apply_v to_o that_o satisfaction_n which_o jesus_n make_v upon_o the_o cross_n in_o virtue_n of_o which_o alone_o all_o our_o good_a work_n find_v a_o grateful_a acceptance_n in_o god_n sight_n ix_o of_o satisfaction_n 1._o he_o believe_v it_o damnable_a to_o think_v any_o thing_n injurious_o of_o christ_n passion_n but_o then_o he_o distinguish_v the_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o sin_n as_o to_o the_o gild_n and_o eterternal_a pain_n the_o satisfaction_n he_o say_v be_v proper_a to_o christ_n but_o as_o to_o the_o temporal_a pain_n which_o may_v remain_v due_a by_o god_n justice_n after_o the_o other_o be_v remit_v he_o say_v that_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n satisfy_v for_o that_o by_o ●rayer_n fast_v alm_n etc._n etc._n 2._o these_o penitential_a work_n he_o say_v be_v no_o otherwise_o satisfactory_a than_o as_o join_v and_o apply_v to_o christ_n satisfaction_n in_o virtue_n of_o which_o alone_o our_o good_a work_n find_v a_o grateful_a acceptance_n in_o god_n sight_n but_o for_o right_o apprehend_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n we_o must_v consider_v 1._o that_o they_o grant_v both_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o sin_n to_o be_v remit_v in_o baptism_n so_o that_o all_o the_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v make_v be_v for_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n 2._o we_o distinguish_v between_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n before_o absolution_n and_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n for_o some_o part_n of_o the_o punishment_n to_o sin_v which_o be_v unremit_v 3._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o true_o penitential_a work_n be_v please_v to_o god_n so_o as_o to_o avert_v his_o displeasure_n 52.56_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o there_o can_v be_v any_o compensation_n in_o way_n of_o equivalency_n between_o what_o we_o suffer_v and_o what_o we_o deserve_v the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n therefore_o on_o this_o head_n consist_v in_o these_o thing_n 1._o that_o after_o the_o total_a remission_n of_o sin_n in_o baptism_n they_o suppose_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o remain_v when_o the_o eternal_a be_v forgive_v which_o the_o penitent_a be_v to_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o and_o without_o this_o be_v do_v in_o this_o life_n he_o must_v go_v into_o purgatory_n for_o that_o end_n of_o which_o more_o under_o that_o head_n 2._o that_o this_o satisfaction_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n after_o absolution_n be_v give_v by_o the_o priest_n so_o that_o although_o the_o penitent_a be_v admit_v into_o god_n favour_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n yet_o the_o application_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n together_o with_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n according_a to_o their_o form_n do_v not_o set_v he_o so_o free_a but_o he_o either_o want_v a_o new_a supply_n from_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n from_o the_o same_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o saint_n or_o else_o he_o be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n by_o his_o own_o penance_n 3._o that_o these_o penitential_a work_n be_v to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o way_n of_o proper_a satisfaction_n to_o divine_a justice_n and_o however_o soft_o this_o may_v be_v express_v the_o meaning_n be_v that_o christ_n have_v merit_v that_o we_o may_v merit_v and_o by_o his_o satisfaction_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o satisfy_v for_o ourselves_o and_o if_o the_o satisfaction_n by_o way_n of_o justice_n be_v take_v away_o the_o other_o will_v be_v a_o controversy_n about_o word_n 4._o that_o these_o penitential_a work_n may_v not_o only_o be_v sufficient_a for_o themselves_o 61._o but_o they_o may_v be_v so_o overdo_v that_o a_o great_a share_n may_v be_v take_v from_o they_o to_o make_v up_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o who_o fall_v short_a when_o they_o be_v due_o apply_v to_o they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o indulgence_n and_o about_o these_o point_n we_o must_v desire_v great_a proof_n than_o we_o have_v ever_o yet_o see_v x._o of_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o believe_v it_o part_n of_o his_o duty_n to_o think_v mean_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o speak_v irreverent_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o do_v what_o he_o be_v able_a to_o lessen_v the_o repute_n of_o it_o and_o bring_v it_o into_o disgrace_n and_o for_o this_o end_n he_o say_v it_o be_v obscure_a full_a of_o ambiguous_a expression_n plain_a contradiction_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v read_v by_o the_o vulgar_a nor_o fit_a to_o be_v translate_v into_o vulgar_a language_n and_o without_o respect_n to_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n profane_o preach_v that_o no_o ten_o book_n in_o the_o world_n have_v do_v so_o much_o
communion_n as_o unworthy_a neither_o do_v it_o reflect_v at_o all_o on_o the_o church_n authority_n or_o make_v the_o truth_n of_o her_o doctrine_n questionable_a to_o he_o that_o many_o of_o her_o eminent_a member_n doctor_n prelate_n and_o lead_v man_n have_v be_v or_o be_v great_a enormous_a sinner_n infamous_a for_o their_o pride_n covetousness_n or_o other_o vice_n whatsoever_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n continual_a and_o uninterrupted_n assistance_n to_o his_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v frustrate_v by_o the_o wickedness_n of_o such_o particular_a man_n though_o in_o great_a dignity_n these_o promise_n be_v make_v sure_a to_o she_o than_o ever_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o nevertheless_o stand_v firm_a in_o her_o authority_n and_o the_o delivery_n of_o truth_n notwithstanding_o the_o frequent_a idolatry_n of_o the_o people_n nadab_n and_o abihu_n consecrate_v priest_n offer_v strange_a fire_n corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n make_v a_o great_a schism_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o moses_n and_o aaron_n and_o other_o high-priest_n in_o all_o her_o succeed_a age_n nay_o though_o all_o thing_n touch_v religion_n and_o virtue_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n run_v to_o decay_n in_o our_o saviour_n time_n both_o in_o priest_n and_o people_n yet_o do_v he_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o command_v all_o to_o be_v obedient_a and_o submit_v to_o those_o who_o have_v the_o superiority_n without_o call_v in_o question_n their_o authority_n or_o doubt_v of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o their_o command_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n say_v he_o matth._n 23.2_o sit_v in_o moses_n be_v chair_n all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v but_o do_v you_o not_o after_o their_o work_n if_o therefore_o god_n special_a assistance_n be_v never_o want_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o as_o to_o let_v it_o fail_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o doctrine_n or_o its_o authority_n notwithstanding_o the_o pride_n covetousness_n cruelty_n impiety_n idolatry_n of_o many_o of_o her_o levite_n elder_n priest_n and_o high-priest_n why_o shall_v not_o he_o believe_v the_o same_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v be_v build_v on_o better_a promise_n and_o that_o it_o remain_v entire_a in_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o her_o authority_n notwithstanding_o the_o viciousness_n of_o many_o of_o her_o governor_n especial_o since_o he_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n confident_a that_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o so_o infamous_a act_v by_o any_o priest_n prelate_n pope_n or_o other_o since_o christ_n time_n but_o what_o may_v be_v follow_v nay_o be_v outdo_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n xvii_o of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n 1._o he_o do_v not_o pretend_v this_o belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o his_o church_n who_o may_v fall_v he_o say_v into_o heresy_n and_o schism_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v secure_v by_o divine_a promise_n from_o all_o error_n and_o danger_n of_o prevarication_n which_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o promise_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n mat._n 16.18_o 28.20_o john_n 14.16_o 26._o but_o however_o the_o former_a seem_v to_o take_v away_o infallibility_n from_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o they_o separate_o appear_v by_o what_o follow_v 2._o the_o like_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o believe_v to_o be_v in_o all_o general_n council_n which_o be_v the_o church_n representative_a by_o which_o they_o be_v special_o protect_v from_o all_o error_n in_o all_o definition_n and_o declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n now_o here_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o infallibility_n tack_v to_o one_o another_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o general_a promise_n which_o ought_v more_o distinct_o to_o be_v consider_v 1._o to_o preserve_v christ_n church_n so_o as_o it_o shall_v never_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n be_v one_o thing_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o all_o error_n be_v another_o the_o former_a answer_n the_o end_n of_o christ_n promise_n as_o to_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o imply_v in_o they_o 2._o the_o promise_n of_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n joh._n 16.13_o be_v not_o make_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o case_n be_v so_o peculiar_a and_o extraordinary_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a inference_n from_o the_o assistance_n promise_v to_o they_o of_o what_o the_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v in_o all_o age_n 3._o if_o the_o diffusive_a church_n have_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n promise_v than_o no_o infallible_a assistance_n can_v from_o thence_o be_v prove_v for_o the_o church_n representative_a so_o that_o some_o particular_a promise_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n as_o assemble_v together_o be_v necessary_a to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o council_n 4._o it_o by_o no_o mean_n prove_v follow_v council_n to_o be_v infallible_a because_o the_o apostle_n say_v act_v 15.28_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o our_o author_n do_v not_o doubt_n but_o the_o same_o may_v be_v prefix_v to_o all_o determination_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n resolve_v on_o by_o any_o general_a council_n lawful_o assemble_v since_o that_o time_n or_o to_o be_v hold_v to_o the_o world_n end_n but_o what_o reason_n he_o have_v for_o not_o doubt_v in_o this_o matter_n i_o can_v see_v the_o assistance_n he_o say_v be_v to_o extend_v as_o far_o as_o the_o promise_n but_o shall_v assistance_n imply_v infallibility_n then_o there_o must_v be_v good_a store_n as_o long_o as_o the_o promise_v of_o divine_a grace_n hold_v good_a but_o this_o assistance_n of_o council_n be_v very_o different_a from_o the_o assistance_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o church_n may_v subsist_v without_o council_n but_o can_v without_o grace_n what_o general_n council_n be_v there_o from_o the_o meeting_n act_v 15._o to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v not_o christ_n promise_n fulfil_v to_o his_o church_n all_o that_o time_n when_o it_o increase_v in_o all_o part_n against_o the_o most_o violent_a opposition_n 5._o no_o parity_n of_o reason_n from_o the_o jewish_a church_n can_v be_v sufficient_a proof_n for_o infallibility_n in_o the_o christian._n but_o our_o author_n argue_v thus_o if_o god_n special_a assistance_n be_v never_o want_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o as_o to_o let_v it_o fail_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o doctrine_n or_o its_o authority_n why_o shall_v not_o he_o believe_v the_o same_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v build_v on_o better_a promise_n what_o special_a assistance_n be_v it_o which_o israel_n have_v when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o for_o a_o long_a time_n israel_n have_v be_v without_o the_o true_a god_n 15.3_o and_o without_o a_o teach_a priest_n and_o without_o law_n and_o as_o to_o judah_n be_v there_o no_o fail_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n in_o our_o saviour_n time_n it_o be_v true_a they_o have_v the_o law_n entire_a and_o that_o be_v all_o that_o be_v good_a among_o they_o for_o their_o teacher_n have_v corrupt_v themselves_o and_o the_o people_n and_o make_v the_o law_n of_o no_o effect_n among_o they_o if_o there_o be_v infallibility_n any_o where_o it_o must_v be_v in_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o sanhedrim_n but_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o any_o christian_n to_o think_v they_o infallible_a when_o they_o be_v so_o gross_o mistake_v about_o the_o main_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o messiah_n and_o pronounce_v he_o worthy_a of_o death_n be_v not_o this_o a_o fine_a argument_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v better_a promise_n no_o doubt_n of_o it_o great_a promise_n of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o that_o to_o come_v but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o infallibility_n in_o council_n 6._o christ_n command_n of_o obedience_n to_o those_o who_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n matth._n 23.2_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o who_o sit_v there_o yet_o this_o be_v allege_v to_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o the_o command_v of_o their_o superior_n but_o st._n chrysostom_n say_v loc_n our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o the_o thing_n command_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n ●er_o cathedram_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la legis_fw-la ostendit_fw-la loc_n 24._o say_v st._n jerome_n not_o their_o own_o doctrine_n but_o that_o of_o moses_n say_v isidore_n and_o so_o hilary_n and_o theophylact._n loc_n maldonate_fw-it confess_v our_o saviour_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o their_o own_o doctrine_n but_o of_o that_o of_o the_o law_n and_o therefore_o he_o yield_v the_o obedience_n here_o require_v be_v to_o be_v restrain_v to_o
or_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o church_n or_o pope_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o must_v of_o necessity_n answer_v for_o it_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o expect_v his_o portion_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n if_o unrepented_a and_o that_o no_o one_o can_v give_v leave_n for_o lie_v perjury_n or_o commit_v any_o sin_n or_o even_o pretend_v to_o it_o unless_o it_o be_v the_o devil_n himself_o or_o some_o devilish_a minister_n of_o he_o such_o as_o he_o detest_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o utter_o abominate_v and_o in_o consequence_n to_o this_o believe_v that_o whosoever_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n deny_v any_o crime_n of_o which_o he_o be_v guilty_a and_o protest_v himself_o to_o be_v innocent_a when_o he_o be_v not_o so_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o mercy_n but_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n a_o enemy_n to_o god_n and_o the_o truth_n shall_v infallible_o be_v receive_v as_o such_o in_o the_o next_o and_o die_v with_o a_o lie_n in_o his_o mouth_n can_v expect_v no_o reward_n but_o from_o the_o father_n of_o lie_n and_o this_o whatsoever_o his_o crime_n be_v whether_o incur_v by_o a_o undertake_n for_o mother-church_n or_o no_o and_o whatsoever_o his_o pretence_n for_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v whether_o absolution_n dispensation_n the_o sacrament_n or_o oath_n of_o secrecy_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o nothing_o of_o these_o be_v capable_a of_o excuse_v he_o in_o lie_n or_o perjury_n or_o make_v they_o to_o be_v innocent_a and_o not_o displease_v to_o god_n nor_o indeed_o do_v he_o ever_o hear_v of_o these_o so_o much_o talk_v on_o dispensation_n and_o absolution_n from_o any_o priest_n of_o his_o church_n either_o in_o sermon_n or_o confession_n he_o never_o read_v of_o they_o in_o his_o book_n and_o catechism_n he_o never_o see_v the_o practice_n of_o they_o in_o any_o of_o his_o communion_n it_o have_v be_v their_o custom_n ever_o since_o oath_n be_v first_o devise_v against_o they_o rather_o to_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o their_o good_n banishment_n imprisonment_n torment_n and_o death_n itself_o than_o forswear_v themselves_o or_o protest_v the_o least_o untruth_n and_o it_o be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n that_o several_a may_v have_v save_v their_o estate_n and_o live_v too_o will_v they_o have_v subscribe_v to_o and_o own_a but_o one_o lie_n and_o yet_o refuse_v it_o choose_v rather_o to_o die_v infamous_o than_o prejudice_n their_o conscience_n with_o a_o untruth_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v a_o great_a mystery_n to_o he_o that_o those_o of_o his_o profession_n shall_v have_v leave_n and_o dispensation_n to_o lie_v and_o forswear_v themselves_o at_o pleasure_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v need_v nothing_o else_o but_o lie_v and_o perjury_n for_o the_o quiet_a enjoyment_n of_o their_o estate_n for_o the_o save_v their_o life_n for_o the_o obtain_n place_n of_o high_a command_n and_o great_a dignity_n such_o as_o will_v be_v extraordinary_o advantageous_a for_o their_o cause_n and_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o church_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o shall_v general_o choose_v rather_o to_o forego_v all_o these_o so_o considerable_a convenience_n that_o once_o lie_v or_o forswear_v themselves_o and_o be_v it_o not_o another_o great_a mystery_n that_o these_o dispensation_n for_o lie_v and_o swear_v shall_v be_v according_a to_o the_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o communion_n be_v never_o instruct_v nor_o inform_v of_o any_o such_o diabolical_a point_n nay_o have_v never_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o the_o information_n receive_v from_o some_o zealous_a adversary_n such_o as_o relate_v either_o mere_o upon_o trust_n or_o else_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v a_o dispensation_n of_o lie_v from_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o may_v charge_v the_o like_a doctrine_n on_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n xix_o of_o dispensation_n here_o the_o misrepresenter_n say_v that_o a_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o absolve_v any_o one_o from_o the_o obligation_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o representer_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o power_n upon_o earth_n can_v absolve_v any_o one_o from_o the_o obligation_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n this_o matter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o one_o affirm_v and_o the_o other_o deny_v but_o by_o find_v out_o if_o possible_a the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o this_o matter_n and_o there_o be_v three_o opinion_n about_o it_o 1._o of_o those_o who_o assert_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o power_n of_o dispense_v in_o any_o divine_a law_n auctoritate_fw-la except_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n say_v that_o where_o the_o text_n seem_v to_o imply_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o panormitan_n say_v this_o exposition_n please_v he_o well_o for_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v in_o all_o other_o thing_n contra_fw-la apostolum_n dispensat_fw-la say_v the_o gloss_n on_o the_o decree_n and_o the_o roman_a editor_n in_o the_o margin_n refer_v to_o 34_o dist._n c._n lector_fw-la to_o prove_v it_o and_o there_o indeed_o the_o gloss_n be_v very_o plain_a in_o the_o case_n sic_fw-la ergo_fw-la papa_n dispensat_fw-la contra_fw-la apostolum_n and_o the_o roman_a corrector_n there_o justify_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v no_o absurd_a doctrine_n as_o to_o positive_a institution_n dispensatio_fw-la but_o the_o former_a notable_a gloss_n as_o panormitan_n call_v it_o set_v down_o the_o particular_n wherein_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v as_o 1._o against_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o canon_n 2._o against_o the_o old_a testament_n 3._o in_o vow_n 4._o in_o oath_n the_o summa_fw-la angelica_n say_v the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v as_o to_o all_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o clavasius_fw-la find_v this_o power_n upon_o the_o plenitude_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n according_a to_o that_o expression_n in_o the_o decretal_a mention_v that_o he_o can_v ex_fw-la plenitudine_fw-la potestatis_fw-la de_fw-la jure_fw-la supra_fw-la ius_n dispensare_fw-la and_o without_o such_o a_o power_n he_o say_v god_n will_v not_o have_v take_v that_o care_n of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o his_o wisdom_n jacobatius_n bring_v several_a instance_n of_o this_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n 215._o and_o refer_v to_o the_o speculator_n for_o more_o jac._n almain_n say_v 1●_n that_o all_o the_o canonist_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v against_o the_o apostle_n and_o many_o of_o their_o divine_n but_o not_o all_o for_o 2._o some_o of_o their_o divine_n hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o that_o imply_v a_o proper_a relaxation_n of_o the_o law_n but_o can_v only_o authoritative_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n do_v not_o oblige_v in_o such_o a_o particular_a case_n because_o a_o inferior_a can_v not_o take_v away_o the_o force_n of_o a_o superior_n law_n and_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o fix_a and_o immutable_a rule_n in_o the_o church_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v in_o one_o law_n of_o god_n he_o may_v dispense_v in_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o this_o opinion_n be_v some_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a school-divines_a as_o thomas_n aquinas_n bonaventure_n major_n soto_n and_o catharinus_n 524._o who_o at_o large_a debate_n this_o question_n and_o deny_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o power_n to_o dispense_v with_o god_n law_n but_o then_o he_o add_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o kind_n of_o prophetical_a power_n to_o declare_v in_o what_o case_n the_o law_n do_v oblige_v and_o in_o what_o not_o which_o he_o parallel_v with_o the_o power_n of_o declare_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o this_o he_o do_v not_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n but_o by_o god_n he_o confess_v the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v with_o those_o precept_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o indispensable_a nor_o alter_v the_o sacrament_n but_o then_o say_v he_o there_o be_v some_o divine_a law_n which_o have_v a_o general_a force_n but_o in_o particular_a case_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o in_o these_o case_n the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v relax_v so_o that_o the_o relaxation_n seem_v to_o come_v from_o god_n himself_o but_o he_o confess_v this_o power_n be_v not_o to_o be_v often_o make_v use_n of_o so_o that_o he_o make_v this_o power_n to_o be_v no_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o prophetical_a interpretation_n as_o he_o call_v it_o and_o he_o bring_v the_o instance_n of_o caiaphas_n to_o this_o
purpose_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o divine_n and_o canonist_n be_v but_o in_o term_n for_o the_o canonist_n be_v in_o the_o right_a as_o to_o the_o power_n and_o the_o divine_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o explain_v it_o 3._o other_o have_v think_v this_o too_o loose_a a_o way_n of_o explain_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o a_o bare_a declaratory_a power_n but_o a_o real_a power_n of_o dispense_n in_o a_o proper_a sense_n in_o particular_a case_n for_o say_v they_o the_o other_o be_v no_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o discretion_n and_o may_v belong_v to_o other_o man_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o this_o they_o look_v on_o as_o more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o commission_n and_o a_o bare_a declaratory_a power_n will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n necessity_n as_o sanchez_n show_v at_o large_a and_o quote_v many_o author_n for_o this_o opinion_n 17._o and_o sayr_a more_o and_o he_o say_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v justify_v without_o it_o which_o suarez_n much_o insist_o upon_o and_o without_o it_o he_o say_v the_o church_n have_v fall_v into_o intolerable_a error_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o say_v the_o church_n have_v grant_v real_a dispensation_n and_o not_o mere_a declaration_n and_o he_o find_v it_o upon_o christ_n promise_n to_o peter_n to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n and_o the_o charge_n to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o then_o he_o explain_v this_o opinion_n by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o formal_a dispensation_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o law_n be_v change_v or_o take_v away_o thus_o i_o have_v brief_o lay_v together_o the_o different_a opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o this_o power_n of_o dispense_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n from_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o do_v all_o consent_n in_o the_o thing_n but_o differ_v only_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o explain_v it_o and_o i_o be_o therefore_o afraid_a our_o representer_n be_v a_o very_a unstudy_v divine_a and_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v their_o own_o doctrine_n or_o he_o will_v never_o have_v talk_v so_o bold_o and_o unskilful_o in_o this_o matter_n as_o to_o what_o he_o pretend_v that_o their_o church_n teach_v that_o every_o lie_n be_v a_o sin_n etc._n etc._n it_o do_v not_o teach_v the_o case_n for_o the_o question_v it_o not_o whether_o their_o church_n teach_v man_n to_o lie_v but_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o power_n in_o the_o church_n as_o by_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n may_v not_o make_v that_o not_o to_o be_v a_o lie_n which_o otherwise_o will_v be_v one_o as_o their_o church_n teach_v that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o break_v their_o ●_z yet_o no_o one_o among_o they_o question_n but_o the_o pope_n may_v dissolve_v the_o obligation_n of_o a_o vow_n although_o it_o be_v make_v to_o god_n himself_o let_v he_o show_v then_o how_o the_o pope_n come_v to_o have_v a_o power_n to_o release_v a_o vow_n make_v to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o have_v a_o power_n to_o release_v the_o obligation_n to_o veracity_n among_o man_n again_o we_o do_v not_o charge_v they_o with_o deliver_v any_o such_o doctrine_n that_o man_n may_v have_v dispensation_n to_o lie_v and_o forswear_v themselves_o at_o pleasure_n for_o we_o know_v this_o dispense_v power_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v up_o as_o a_o great_a mystery_n and_o not_o to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o but_o upon_o weighty_a and_o urgent_a cause_n of_o great_a consequence_n and_o benefit_n to_o the_o church_n as_o their_o doctor_n declare_v but_o as_o to_o all_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o he_o allude_v to_o i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v to_o they_o for_o our_o debate_n be_v only_o whether_o there_o be_v such_o a_o power_n of_o dispensation_n allow_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o not_o xx._n of_o the_o depose_v power_n he_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o his_o allegiance_n to_o his_o prince_n and_o that_o he_o need_v no_o long_o be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n and_o maintain_v the_o right_n privilege_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o king_n than_o the_o pope_n will_v give_v he_o leave_v and_o that_o if_o this_o mighty_a father_n think_v sit_v to_o thunder_v out_o a_o excommunication_n against_o he_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v deem_v the_o best_a subject_n and_o most_o christian_n that_o can_v first_o shed_v his_o prince_n blood_n and_o make_v he_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o rome_n and_o he_o be_v but_o ill_o reward_v for_o his_o pain_n who_o after_o so_o glorious_a a_o achievement_n have_v not_o his_o name_n place_v in_o the_o calendar_n and_o he_o canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a danger_n to_o a_o king_n than_o to_o have_v popish_a subject_n he_o hold_v his_o life_n among_o they_o only_o at_o the_o pope_n be_v pleasure_n it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o his_o allegiance_n to_o his_o sovereign_n or_o that_o he_o can_v depose_v prince_n upon_o any_o account_n whatsoever_o give_v leave_n to_o their_o subject_n to_o take_v up_o arm_n against_o they_o and_o endeavour_v their_o ruin_n he_o know_v that_o depose_v &_o king-killing_a power_n have_v be_v maintain_v by_o some_o canonist_n and_o divine_n of_o his_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o their_o opinion_n lawful_a and_o annex_v to_o the_o papal_a chair_n he_o know_v likewise_o that_o some_o pope_n have_v endeavour_v to_o act_v according_a to_o this_o power_n but_o that_o this_o doctrine_n appertain_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n and_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o of_o that_o communion_n be_v a_o malicious_a calumny_n a_o downright_a falsity_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o for_o the_o f●w_a author_n that_o be_v abettor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n there_o be_v of_o his_o communion_n three_o time_n the_o number_n that_o public_o disow_v all_o such_o authority_n beside_o several_a university_n and_o whole_a body_n that_o have_v solemn_o condemn_v it_o without_o be_v in_o the_o least_o suspect_v of_o their_o religion_n or_o of_o deny_v any_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n those_o other_o author_n therefore_o publish_v their_o own_o opinion_n in_o their_o book_n and_o those_o pope_n act_v according_a to_o what_o they_o judge_v lawful_a and_o all_o this_o amount_n to_o no_o more_o than_o that_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v or_o be_v a_o opinion_n among_o some_o of_o his_o church_n but_o to_o raise_v it_o to_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n upon_o these_o ground_n be_v impossible_a let_v his_o church_n therefore_o answer_v for_o no_o more_o than_o what_o she_o deliver_v for_o faith_n let_v prelate_n answer_v for_o their_o action_n and_o author_n for_o their_o own_o opinion_n otherwise_o more_o church_n must_v be_v charge_v with_o depose_v and_o king-killing_a doctrine_n beside_o that_o of_o rome_n the_o university_n of_o oxford_n have_v find_v other_o author_n of_o pernicious_a book_n and_o damnable_a doctrine_n destructive_a to_o the_o sacred_a person_n of_o prince_n their_o state_n and_o government_n beside_o jesuit_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o decree_n publish_v in_o the_o london_n gazette_n july_n 26._o 1683._o in_o which_o they_o condemn_v twenty_o seven_o false_a impious_a seditious_a proposition_n fit_v to_o stir_v up_o tumult_n overthrow_n state_n and_o kingdom_n to_o lead_v to_o rebellion_n murder_n of_o prince_n and_o atheism_n itself_o of_o which_o number_n only_o three_o or_o four_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o jesuit_n the_o rest_n have_v man_n of_o another_o communion_n for_o their_o father_n and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o first_o condemn_v by_o oxford_n what_o they_o do_v here_o in_o the_o year_n 1683._o have_v be_v solemn_o do_v in_o paris_n in_o 1626._o where_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o sorbon_n give_v sentence_n against_o this_o proposition_n of_o sanctarellus_n viz_o that_o the_o pope_n for_o heresy_n and_o schism_n may_v depose_v prince_n and_o exempt_v the_o subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n the_o like_a be_v do_v by_o the_o university_n of_o caen_n rheims_n poictoirs_n valence_n bourdeaux_n bourges_n and_o the_o condemnation_n subscribe_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o mariana_n book_n be_v commit_v public_o to_o the_o flame_n by_o a_o provincial_a council_n of_o his_o own_o order_n for_o the_o discourse_v the_o point_n of_o king-killing_a doctrine_n problematical_o why_o therefore_o shall_v this_o disloyal_a doctrine_n be_v lay_v to_o his_o church_n whenas_o it_o have_v be_v write_v against_o by_o several_a hundred_o single_a author_n in_o her_o communion_n and_o disow_v and_o solemn_o condemn_v by_o so_o many_o famous_a
university_n and_o why_o shall_v the_o action_n of_o some_o few_o pope_n with_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o some_o speculative_a doctor_n be_v so_o often_o and_o vehement_o urge_v for_o the_o just_a charge_v this_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o to_o a_o serious_a impartial_a considerer_n be_v only_o mere_a fallacy_n capable_a of_o libel_v all_o society_n in_o the_o world_n of_o overthrow_v all_o state_n and_o kingdom_n and_o only_o fit_a argument_n for_o knave_n to_o cheat_v fool_n withal_o there_o be_v no_o government_n in_o the_o world_n which_o may_v not_o be_v easy_o prove_v tyrannical_a no_o religion_n persuasion_n or_o society_n which_o may_v not_o plausible_o be_v indict_v of_o atheism_n if_o the_o action_n pretence_n claim_n and_o endeavour_v of_o some_o few_o of_o their_o governor_n and_o lead_a man_n the_o opinion_n write_n fancy_n of_o some_o author_n be_v allow_v as_o sufficient_a evidence_n for_o the_o bring_n in_o the_o verdict_n of_o guilty_a upon_o the_o whole_a when_o malice_n therefore_o and_o envy_n have_v do_v their_o worst_a in_o this_o point_n to_o render_v the_o papist_n bloody_a and_o barbarous_a to_o the_o world_n yet_o '_o d_v certain_a after_o all_o that_o popish_a prince_n sit_v as_o safe_a in_o their_o throne_n enjoy_v as_o much_o peace_n and_o security_n as_o any_o other_o prince_n whatsoever_o and_o that_o the_o papist_n in_o england_n can_v give_v as_o good_a proof_n of_o their_o loyalty_n as_o the_o best_a of_o those_o that_o clamour_n so_o loud_o against_o they_o they_o can_v bid_v defiance_n to_o their_o adversary_n to_o show_v any_o one_o person_n of_o honour_n and_o estate_n among_o they_o or_o even_o four_o of_o any_o condition_n whatsoever_o that_o bear_v arm_n against_o charles_n the_o first_o during_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o his_o trouble_n they_o can_v make_v good_a that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o among_o they_o that_o do_v not_o assist_v his_o majesty_n either_o with_o person_n or_o purse_n or_o both_o and_o they_o can_v say_v that_o charles_n the_o first_o be_v murder_v in_o cold_a blood_n by_o his_o protestant_a subject_n after_o many_o hundred_o papist_n have_v lose_v their_o life_n for_o the_o prevent_v that_o butchery_n and_o that_o charles_n the_o second_o be_v pursue_v by_o the_o same_o subject_n for_o his_o life_n save_v it_o among_o the_o papist_n xx._n of_o the_o depose_v power_n to_o bring_v this_o matter_n into_o as_o narrow_a a_o compass_n as_o may_v be_v i_o shall_v first_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o concession_n which_o will_v save_v we_o a_o labour_n of_o proof_n 1._o he_o yield_v that_o the_o depose_v and_o king-killing_a power_n have_v be_v maintain_v by_o some_o canonist_n and_o divine_n of_o his_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o their_o opinion_n lawful_a and_o annex_v to_o the_o papal_a chair_n 2._o that_o some_o pope_n have_v endeavour_v to_o act_v according_a to_o this_o power_n but_o then_o he_o deny_v that_o this_o doctrine_n appertain_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n and_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o of_o that_o communion_n and_o more_o than_o that_o he_o say_v the_o affirm_v of_o it_o be_v a_o malicious_a calumny_n a_o downright_a falsity_n let_v we_o now_o calm_o debate_v the_o matter_n whether_o according_a to_o the_o receive_a principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o be_v only_o a_o particular_a opinion_n of_o some_o pope_n and_o divine_n or_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o those_o who_o deny_v it_o do_v account_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o we_o know_v they_o do_v not_o but_o whether_o upon_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o do_v it_o i_o shall_v only_o to_o avoid_v cavil_v proceed_v upon_o the_o principle_n own_v by_o our_o author_n himself_o viz._n 1._o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o understand_v by_o the_o community_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o angel_n since_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o present_a church_n 2._o that_o by_o the_o present_a church_n be_v understand_v the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o council_n who_o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o they_o have_v infallible_a assistance_n 3._o that_o the_o pope_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o particular_a assistance_n promise_v he_o with_o a_o special_a regard_n to_o his_o office_n and_o function_n if_o therefore_o it_o appear_v that_o pope_n and_o council_n have_v declare_v this_o depose_v doctrine_n and_o t●ey_n h●ve_v receive_v other_o thing_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o same_o declaration_n why_o shall_v they_o then_o stick_v at_o yield_v this_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v that_o i_o can_v find_v that_o pope_n and_o council_n for_o several_a age_n have_v assert_v and_o exercise_v the_o depose_v power_n but_o it_o be_v allege_v against_o these_o decree_n &_o acts._n 1_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o universal_a tradition_n 2._o that_o they_o have_v not_o universal_a reception_n now_o if_o these_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o consequence_n of_o it_o 1._o then_o every_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o examine_v the_o decree_n of_o council_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v embrace_v or_o not_o for_o he_o be_v to_o judge_v whether_o they_o be_v found_v on_o universal_a tradition_n and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o to_o take_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o his_o guide_n but_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o christ_n time_n which_o overthrow_v a_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 2._o then_o he_o must_v reject_v the_o pretend_a infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o can_v so_o notorious_o err_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o christendom_n as_o this_o be_v and_o consequent_o their_o authority_n can_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o declare_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o all_o person_n must_v be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o believe_v as_o they_o see_v cause_n notwithstanding_o the_o definition_n make_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n 3._o then_o he_o must_v believe_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o have_v be_v mistake_v not_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o to_o have_v persist_v in_o it_o for_o five_o hundred_o year_n which_o must_v take_v away_o not_o only_a infallibility_n but_o any_o kind_n of_o reverence_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o for_o whatever_o may_v be_v say_v as_o to_o those_o who_o have_v depend_v on_o prince_n or_o favour_v their_o ●_z against_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o for_o so_o long_a time_n the_o lead_a party_n in_o that_o church_n do_v assert_v and_o maintain_v the_o depose_v power_n and_o therefore_o lessius_fw-la true_o understand_v this_o matter_n 89._o when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o denial_n whereof_o be_v more_o dangerous_a to_o the_o church_n or_o do_v precipitate_a man_n more_o into_o heresy_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o church_n than_o this_o of_o the_o depose_v power_n for_o he_o say_v they_o can_v not_o maintain_v their_o church_n authority_n without_o it_o and_o he_o reckon_v up_o these_o ill_a consequence_n of_o deny_v it_o 1._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v err_v for_o at_o least_o five_o hundred_o year_n in_o a_o matter_n fundamental_a as_o to_o government_n and_o of_o great_a moment_n which_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o error_n about_o sacrament_n as_o penance_n extreme_a unction_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o one_o hold_v that_o it_o have_v err_v in_o a_o great_a matter_n 2._o that_o it_o have_v not_o only_o err_v but_o voluntary_o and_o out_o of_o ambition_n pervert_v out_o of_o design_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primive_a church_n and_o father_n concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v in_o another_o contrary_n to_o it_o against_o the_o right_n and_o authority_n of_o prince_n which_o be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n 3._o that_o it_o make_v know_o unrighteous_a decree_n to_o draw_v person_n from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o prince_n and_o so_o they_o become_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n and_o all_o the_o ill_a consequence_n of_o they_o under_o a_o show_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n 4._o that_o the_o church_n decree_n command_n judgement_n and_o censure_n may_v be_v safe_o contemn_v as_o null_a and_o contain_v intolerable_a error_n and_o that_o it_o may_v require_v such_o thing_n which_o good_a subject_n be_v bind_v to_o disobey_v 5._o that_o gregory_n vii_o
in_o the_o canon_n nos_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n urban_n ii_o gregory_n ix_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o alex._n iii_o and_o innocent_a iii_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n of_o vienna_n of_o constance_n of_o lateran_n under_o leo_n x._o and_o of_o trent_n have_v all_o grievous_o and_o enormous_o err_v about_o this_o matter_n for_o that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o they_o all_o he_o show_v at_o large_a and_o so_o seven_o general_n council_n lose_v their_o infallibility_n at_o one_o blow_n 6._o that_o the_o gate_n of_o h●ll_n have_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n for_o the_o true_a church_n can_v never_o teach_v such_o pernicious_a doctrine_n as_o this_o must_v be_v if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a and_o if_o it_o err_v in_o this_o it_o may_v as_o well_o err_v in_o any_o other_o doctrine_n and_o so_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v or_o obey_v it_o 7._o that_o prince_n and_o all_o layman_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o withdraw_v from_o their_o church_n because_o it_o show_v itself_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o a_o spirit_n of_o ambition_n and_o not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o may_v just_o prosecute_v all_o that_o maintain_v a_o doctrine_n so_o pernicious_a to_o government_n if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o our_o author_n say_v to_o clear_v this_o from_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 1._o that_o for_o the_o few_o author_n that_o be_v abettor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n there_o be_v of_o his_o communion_n three_o time_n the_o number_n that_o public_o disow_v all_o such_o authority_n if_o this_o b●_n true_a it_o be_v not_o much_o for_o the_o reputation_n of_o their_o church_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o number_n of_o those_o who_o be_v liable_a to_o all_o these_o dreadful_a consequence_n which_o lessius_fw-la urge_v upon_o the_o denier_n of_o it_o but_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o believe_v there_o shall_v be_v so_o few_o follower_n of_o so_o many_o pope_n and_o seven_o general_a council_n own_v for_o such_o by_o the_o disowners_n of_o this_o doctrine_n 1_o except_o the_o lateran_n under_o leo_n 10_o the_o poor_a eastern_a christian_n be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o one_o general_n council_n either_o that_o of_o ephesus_n or_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o they_o plead_v for_o themselves_o that_o there_o be_v a_o misinterpretation_n of_o their_o meaning_n or_o not_o right_o understand_v one_o another_o about_o the_o difference_n of_o nature_n and_o person_n which_o occasion_v those_o decree_n 92._o i_o will_v fain_o know_v whether_o those_o church_n which_o do_v not_o embrace_v the_o decree_n of_o those_o council_n be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o heresy_n or_o not_o if_o they_o be_v then_o what_o must_v we_o think_v of_o such_o who_o reject_v the_o decree_n of_o seven_o general_a council_n one_o after_o another_o and_o give_v far_o less_o probable_a account_n of_o the_o proceed_n of_o those_o council_n in_o their_o definition_n than_o the_o other_o do_v 2._o he_o say_v those_o who_o have_v condemn_v it_o have_v not_o be_v in_o the_o least_o suspect_v of_o their_o religion_n or_o of_o deny_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n let_v any_o one_o judge_n of_o this_o by_o lessius_fw-la his_o consequence_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o first_o treatise_n against_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n say_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o power_n be_v erroneous_a in_o faith_n etc._n as_o well_o as_o temerarious_a and_o impious_a and_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o this_o substantial_a argument_n because_o they_o who_o hold_v it_o must_v suppose_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v for_o some_o time_n in_o a_o damnable_a error_n of_o belief_n and_o sin_n of_o practice_n and_o he_o not_o only_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v define_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o for_o a_o long_a time_n universal_o receive_v and_o that_o no_o one_o author_n can_v be_v produce_v before_o calvin_n time_n that_o deny_v this_o power_n absolute_o or_o in_o any_o case_n whatsoever_o but_o a_o few_o author_n that_o be_v abettor_n of_o it_o say_v our_o representer_n not_o one_o total_a dissenter_n for_o a_o long_a time_n say_v the_o other_o and_o which_o of_o these_o be_v the_o true_a representer_n the_o denier_n of_o it_o not_o in_o the_o least_o suspect_v of_o their_o religion_n say_v one_o their_o opinion_n be_v erroneous_a in_o faith_n temerarious_a and_o impious_a say_v the_o other_o and_o a_o professor_n of_o louvain_n now_o live_v have_v undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o number_n be_v far_o great_a of_o those_o who_o assert_v this_o doctrine_n than_o of_o those_o who_o deny_v it_o seatis_fw-la 3._o if_o we_o charge_v their_o church_n with_o this_o opinion_n may_v not_o they_o as_o well_o charge_v we_o with_o the_o like_a since_o proposition_n as_o dangerous_a be_v condemn_v at_o oxford_n july_n 26_o 1683._o as_o hold_v not_o by_o jesuit_n but_o by_o some_o among_o ourselves_o 1684._o this_o be_v the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_v but_o we_o must_v desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v the_o great_a disparity_n of_o the_o case_n we_o can_v deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v man_n of_o ill_a mind_n and_o disloyal_a principle_n factious_a and_o disobedient_a enemy_n to_o the_o government_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n but_o have_v these_o man_n ever_o have_v that_o countenance_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o our_o church_n which_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n have_v have_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v the_o case_n parallel_n he_o must_v suppose_v our_o house_n of_o convocation_n to_o have_v several_a time_n declare_v these_o damnable_a doctrine_n and_o give_v encouragement_n to_o rebel_n to_o proceed_v against_o their_o king_n and_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n to_o have_v condemn_v they_o for_o this_o be_v true_o the_o case_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o pope_n and_o council_n have_v own_v and_o approve_v and_o act_v by_o the_o depose_v principle_n but_o the_o university_n of_o france_n of_o late_a year_n have_v condemn_v it_o how_o come_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o regicide_n among_o we_o to_o be_v parallel_v with_o this_o doctrine_n when_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o church_n be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o they_o and_o our_o house_n of_o convocation_n will_v as_o ready_o condemn_v any_o such_o damnable_a doctrine_n as_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v how_o repugnant_a such_o principle_n be_v to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o none_o can_v be_v rebel_n to_o their_o prince_n but_o they_o must_v be_v false_a to_o our_o church_n as_o to_o the_o personal_a loyalty_n of_o many_o person_n in_o that_o church_n as_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o question_v it_o so_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a for_o i_o to_o debate_v it_o if_o i_o do_v since_o our_o business_n be_v not_o concern_v person_n but_o doctrine_n and_o it_o be_v of_o old_a observe_v concern_v the_o epicurean_o that_o tho'_o their_o principle_n do_v overthrow_v any_o true_a friendship_n yet_o many_o of_o they_o make_v excellent_a friend_n xxi_o of_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v no_o long_o oblige_v to_o obey_v christ_n command_n than_o his_o church_n will_v give_v he_o leave_v and_o that_o therefore_o though_o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o command_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v so_o by_o all_o yet_o he_o think_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o any_o to_o do_v so_o now_o but_o priest_n because_o his_o church_n forsooth_o have_v forbid_v the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o precept_n of_o christ_n who_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o mat._n 26._o in_o submission_n to_o which_o church-prohibition_n all_o the_o poor_a people_n of_o his_o communion_n content_o rest_v while_o they_o see_v themselves_o defraud_v of_o great_a part_n of_o that_o benefit_n which_o christ_n leave_v they_o as_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o their_o poor_a soul_n and_o the_o remedy_n of_o their_o infirmity_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v all_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o neither_o his_o church_n nor_o any_o other_o power_n upon_o earth_n can_v limit_v alter_v or_o annul_v any_o precept_n of_o divine_a institution_n contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o law_n giver_n neither_o be_v the_o denial_n of_o the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n a_o practice_n any_o way_n opposite_a to_o this_o his_o belief_n he_o be_v teach_v that_o tho'_o christ_n institute_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o so_o deliver_v it_o to_o his_o apostle_n who_o only_o be_v then_o present_a and_o
after_o it_o and_o it_o be_v no_o great_a advantage_n to_o purgatory_n for_o he_o that_o commend_v self-murder_n to_o have_v introduce_v it_o the_o most_o probable_a account_n i_o can_v give_v of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o alexandrian_a jew_n of_o who_o number_n jason_n of_o cyrene_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v have_v take_v in_o several_a of_o the_o philosophical_a opinion_n especial_o the_o platonist_n into_o their_o religion_n as_o appear_v by_o philo_n and_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v 8._o that_o plato_n hold_v a_o purgatory_n and_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o apply_v what_o relate_v to_o the_o law_n to_o their_o platonic_a notion_n so_o here_o the_o law_n appoint_v a_o sin-offering_a with_o respect_n to_o the_o live_n but_o jason_n will_v needs_o have_v this_o refer_v to_o the_o dead_a and_o then_o set_v down_o his_o own_o remark_n upon_o it_o that_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a cogitation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o our_o author_n render_v it_o if_o it_o be_v holy_a with_o respect_n to_o the_o law_n there_o must_v be_v some_o ground_n for_o it_o in_o the_o law_n and_o that_o we_o appeal_v to_o and_o do_v not_o think_v any_o particular_a fancy_n sufficient_a to_o introduce_v such_o a_o novelty_n as_o this_o be_v which_o have_v no_o foundation_n either_o in_o the_o law_n or_o the_o prophet_n and_o it_o will_v be_v strange_a for_o a_o new_a doctrine_n to_o be_v set_v up_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n be_v cease_v among_o they_o but_o s._n august_n hold_v these_o book_n for_o canonical_a and_o say_v they_o be_v so_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n l._n 18._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la dei_fw-la to_o answer_n th●s_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o observe_v not_o only_o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o other_o before_o mention_v as_o to_o these_o book_n but_o that_o as_o canus_n note_n 2●.4_n it_o be_v then_o lawful_a to_o doubt_v of_o their_o authority_n and_o he_o go_v as_o low_a as_o gregory_n i._o who_o he_o deny_v not_o to_o have_v reject_v they_o and_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v set_v the_o authority_n of_o one_o ●gainst_a the_o other_o especial_o when_o s._n augustine_n himself_o 23._o be_v press_v hard_o with_o the_o fact_n of_o razias_n confess_v 1._o that_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n in_o their_o canon_n as_o they_o have_v the_o law_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o psalm_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n give_v testimony_n as_o to_o his_o witness_n which_o be_v a_o evident_a proof_n he_o think_v not_o these_o book_n sufficient_a to_o ground_v a_o doctrine_n upon_o wh●c●_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o other_o 2._o that_o however_o this_o book_n be_v not_o unprofitable_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v sober_o read_v and_o hear_v which_o imply_v a_o great_a caution_n than_o s._n augustine_n will_v ever_o have_v give_v concern_v a_o book_n he_o believe_v true_o canonical_a but_o say_v bellarmine_n 3._o his_o meaning_n be_v only_o to_o keep_v man_n from_o imitate_v the_o example_n of_o razias_n whereas_o that_o which_o they_o press_v st._n augustine_n with_o be_v not_o mere_o the_o fact_n but_o the_o character_n that_o be_v give_v of_o it_o sancta●um_fw-la sc●ip●urarum_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la laudasus_fw-la est_fw-la razias_n be_v their_o very_a word_n in_o s._n augustine_n and_o therefore_o the_o caution_n relate_v to_o the_o book_n and_o not_o mere_o to_o his_o example_n and_o he_o lessen_v the_o character_n give_v by_o the_o author_n when_o he_o say_v he_o choose_v to_o die_v noble_o it_o have_v be_v better_a say_v he_o to_o have_v die_v humble_o but_o the_o other_o be_v the_o elogium_fw-la give_v in_o the_o heathen_a history_n and_o better_a become_v brave_a heathen_n than_o true_a martyr_n can_v any_o one_o now_o think_v s._n augustine_n believe_v this_o writer_n divine_o inspire_v or_o his_o doctrine_n sufficient_a to_o ground_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n upon_o and_o i_o wonder_v they_o shall_v not_o every_o jot_n as_o well_o commend_v self-murder_n as_o a_o heroical_a act._n as_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n from_o these_o word_n of_o jason_n or_o his_o epitemizer_n for_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n will_v hold_v as_o strong_o for_o one_o as_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o achilles_n for_o purgatory_n which_o natalis_n alexander_n who_o our_o author_n follow_v in_o this_o matter_n say_v 4._o be_v a_o demonstrative_a place_n against_o those_o that_o deny_v it_o but_o i_o must_v proceed_v 2._o purgatory_n be_v plain_o intimate_v by_o our_o saviour_n matt._n 12.32_o whosoever_o speak_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v he_o neither_o in_o this_o world_n neither_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v by_o which_o word_n christ_n evident_o suppose_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o discern_v this_o plain_a intimation_n that_o i_o wonder_v how_o any_o come_v to_o think_v of_o it_o out_o of_o this_o place_n well!_o but_o do_v it_o not_o hence_o follow_v that_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v not_o near_o so_o plain_o as_o that_o sin_n will_v not_o be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v not_o that_o particular_a sin_n but_z other_o may_z how_o do_v that_o appear_v what_o intimation_n be_v there_o that_o any_o sin_v not_o forgive_v here_o shall_v be_v forgive_v there_o or_o that_o any_o sin_n here_o remit_v as_o to_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n shall_v be_v there_o remit_v as_o to_o the_o temporal_a and_o without_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o remission_n nothing_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o hence_o but_o if_o there_o be_v a_o remission_n in_o another_o world_n it_o can_v be_v neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v in_o purgatory_n but_o those_o who_o own_o a_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o another_o world_n say_v it_o will_v be_v on_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o the_o actual_a deliverance_n of_o the_o just_a from_o punishment_n may_v be_v not_o improper_o call_v the_o full_a remission_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o s._n augustine_n who_o he_o quote_v plain_o say_v si_fw-la nulla_fw-la remitterentur_fw-la in_o judicio_fw-la illo_fw-la novissimo_fw-la etc._n etc._n julian_n l._n 6._o c._n 5._o where_o it_o be_v evident_a s._n augustine_n take_v this_o place_n to_o relate_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o so_o in_o the_o other_o de_n civit._fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 21._o c._n 24._o but_o as_o he_o suppose_v a_o remission_n so_o he_o do_v a_o purgation_n as_o by_o fire_n in_o that_o day_n in_o illo_fw-la judicio_fw-la poenas_fw-la quasdam_fw-la purgatorias_fw-la futuras_fw-la de_fw-fr civit._fw-la dei_fw-la l_o 20._o c._n 25._o and_o so_o he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v on_o psal._n 37._o to_o which_o he_o apply_v 1_o cor._n 3.15_o but_o our_o author_n be_v very_o much_o out_o when_o he_o say_v s._n augustine_n apply_v 1_o pet._n 3.15_o to_o some_o place_n of_o temporal_a chastisement_n in_o another_o world_n when_o bellarmine_n set_v himself_o to_o confute_v s._n augustine_n about_o it_o 13._o as_o understand_v it_o of_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v little_a cause_n to_o boast_v of_o st._n augustine_n authority_n about_o purgatory_n unless_o he_o have_v bring_v something_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n out_o of_o he_o h●s_n other_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n be_v not_o worth_a consider_v which_o he_o borrow_v from_o natalis_n alexander_n that_o of_o dionysius_n areopag_n eccl._n hierarch_n c._n 7._o be_v a_o know_a counterfeit_n and_o impertinent_a relate_v to_o a_o region_n of_o rest_n and_o happiness_n and_o so_o do_v tertullian_n oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a de_fw-fr cor._n milit_fw-la c._n 3._o for_o they_o be_v eucharistical_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n be_v make_v for_o the_o great_a saint_n st._n cyprian_n ep._n 66._o speak_v of_o a_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o he_o there_o mention_n the_o natalitia_fw-la of_o the_o martyr_n but_o by_o compare_v that_o with_o his_o epist._n 33._o it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o anniversary_n commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o signify_v nothing_o to_o purgatory_n for_o the_o best_a man_n be_v put_v into_o it_o and_o st._n cyprian_n threaten_v it_o as_o a_o punishment_n to_o be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o diptych_n but_o sure_o it_o be_v none_o to_o escape_v purgatory_n arnobius_n l._n 4._o only_a speak_v of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a which_o we_o deny_v not_o to_o have_v be_v then_o use_v in_o the_o church_n not_o with_o respect_n to_o any_o temporary_a pain_n in_o purgatory_n but_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o therein_o lie_v the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n with_o respect_n to_o antiquity_n which_o be_v not_o whether_o any_o solemn_a prayer_n be_v not_o then_o make_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o whether_o those_o prayer_n do_v
relate_v to_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o a_o state_n of_o punishment_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o whatever_o state_n soul_n be_v then_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o before_o the_o great_a day_n if_o there_o can_v be_v no_o deliverance_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n it_o signify_v nothing_o to_o the_o present_a question_n as_o to_o the_o vision_n of_o perpetua_fw-la concern_v her_o brother_n dinocrates_n who_o die_v at_o seven_o year_n old_a be_v baptize_v it_o be_v hardly_o reconcilable_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n to_o suppose_v such_o a_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o perpetua_fw-la do_v think_v she_o see_v he_o in_o a_o worse_a condition_n and_o think_v likewise_o that_o by_o her_o prayer_n she_o bring_v he_o into_o a_o better_a for_o she_o see_v he_o play_v like_o little_a child_n and_o then_o she_o awake_v and_o conclude_v that_o she_o have_v give_v he_o ease_n but_o be_v it_o indeed_o come_v to_o this_o that_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o purgatory_n must_v be_v bu●lt_v on_o such_o a_o foundation_n as_o this_o i_o do_v not_o call_v in_o question_n the_o act_n of_o perpetua_fw-la nor_o her_o sincerity_n in_o relate_v her_o dream_n but_o must_v the_o church_n build_v her_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o dream_n or_o vision_n of_o young_a lady_n though_o very_o devout_a for_o ubia_fw-la perpetua_fw-la be_v then_o but_o twenty_o two_o as_o she_o say_v herself_o but_o none_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v who_o m●ke_a use_n of_o the_o best_a support_v their_o cause_n will_v afford_v it_o be_v time_n now_o to_o see_v what_o strength_n of_o reason_n he_o offer_v for_o purgatory_n 1._o he_o say_v when_o a_o sinner_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n though_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n due_a to_o his_o sin_n be_v always_o remit_v yet_o there_o sometime_o remain_v a_o temporal_a penalty_n to_o be_v undergo_v as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o david_n but_o do_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v a_o temporal_a penalty_n that_o must_v be_v undergo_v either_o here_o or_o hereafter_o without_o which_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o purgatory_n who_o deny_v that_o god_n in_o this_o life_n for_o example_n sake_n may_v punish_v those_o who_o sin_n he_o have_v promise_v to_o remit_v as_o to_o another_o world_n this_o be_v therefore_o a_o very_a slender_a foundation_n 2._o there_o be_v some_o sin_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n light_n and_o venial_a i_o will_v not_o dispute_v that_o but_o suppose_v there_o be_v must_v man_n go_v then_o into_o purgatory_n for_o mere_a venial_a sin_n what_o a_o strange_a doctrine_n do_v this_o appear_v to_o any_o m●n's_n reason_n that_o god_n shall_v forgive_v the_o great_a sin_n and_o require_v so_o severe_a a_o punishment_n for_o sin_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n venial_a i._n e._n so_o inconsiderable_a in_o their_o own_o opinion_n that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o confess_v they_o which_o do_v not_o interrupt_v a_o state_n of_o grace_n which_o require_v only_o a_o implicit_a detestation_n of_o they_o se●undo_fw-la which_o do_v not_o deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n which_o may_v be_v remit_v by_o holy_a water_n or_o a_o bishop_n bl●ssing_n as_o their_o divine_n agree_v 3._o that_o to_o all_o sin_n some_o penalty_n be_v due_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o what_o follow_v from_o hence_o but_o the_o necessity_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n but_o how_o do_v it_o appear_v that_o after_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n by_o christ_n and_o the_o remission_n of_o eternal_a punishment_n there_o st●ll_v remain_v a_o necessity_n of_o far_a satisfaction_n for_o such_o a_o temporal_a penalty_n in_o another_o world_n 4._o that_o general_o speak_v few_o man_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n but_o either_o with_o the_o guilt_n of_o venial_a sin_n or_o obnoxious_a to_o some_o temporal_a punishment_n no_o doubt_n all_o man_n be_v obnoxious_a by_o their_o sin_n to_o the_o punishment_n of_o another_o world_n but_o that_o be_v not_o the_o point_n but_o whether_o god_n have_v declare_v that_o although_o he_o remit_v the_o eternal_a punishment_n he_o will_v not_o the_o temporal_a and_o although_o he_o will_v forgive_v thousand_o of_o pound_n he_o will_v not_o the_o penny_n and_o farthing_n we_o owe_v to_o he_o but_o if_o mortal_a sin_n be_v remit_v as_o to_o the_o guilt_n and_o venial_a do_v not_o hinder_v a_o st●te_n of_o grace_n what_o room_n be_v there_o for_o vindictive_a justice_n in_o purgatory_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o so_o much_o weight_n be_v lay_v upon_o that_o bellarmine_n say_v sunt_fw-la they_o must_v go_v direct_o to_o hell_n who_o do_v not_o believe_v purgatory_n if_o this_o be_v true_a why_o be_v it_o not_o put_v into_o the_o representation_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v the_o danger_n of_o not_o believe_v so_o credible_a so_o reasonable_a a_o doctrine_n as_o this_o but_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o much_o more_o dangerous_a thing_n to_o condemn_v other_o for_o not_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n which_o have_v so_o very_o slender_a a_o pretence_n either_o to_o scripture_n or_o reason_n xxiv_o of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n he_o it_o counsel_v by_o his_o church_n to_o be_v present_a at_o sermon_n but_o never_o permit_v to_o hear_v any_o he_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v they_o be_v all_o deliver_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n he_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v but_o it_o must_v be_v in_o latin_n he_o be_v command_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o church_n service_n and_o to_o hear_v mass_n but_o it_o must_v be_v without_o understand_v a_o word_n it_o be_v all_o perform_v in_o a_o language_n of_o which_o he_o be_v altogether_o ignorant_a and_o thus_o be_v miserable_o deprive_v of_o all_o the_o comfortable_a benefit_n of_o christianity_n hear_v but_o without_o understanding_n pray_v but_o without_o reap_v fruit_n assist_v at_o public_a assembly_n but_o like_o a_o stock_n or_o a_o stone_n without_o feel_v or_o any_o the_o least_o sense_n of_o devotion_n he_o be_v counsel_v by_o his_o church_n to_o be_v present_a at_o sermon_n such_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v they_o b●ing_v always_o deliver_v in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n of_o every_o country_n in_o france_n french_z in_o spain_n spanish_n in_o italy_n italian_a in_o england_n if_o permit_v english_a they_o be_v pure_o intend_v for_o the_o good_a instruction_n of_o the_o congregation_n present_a he_o be_v teach_v to_o pray_v and_o always_o provide_v of_o such_o book_n of_o devotion_n as_o he_o be_v capable_a of_o understanding_n every_o nation_n be_v well_o furnish_v with_o such_o help_n extant_a in_o the_o language_n proper_a to_o the_o country_n he_o be_v command_v to_o assist_v at_o the_o church-service_n and_o to_o hear_v mass_n and_o in_o this_o he_o be_v instruct_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n but_o to_o know_v what_o be_v do_v for_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n wherein_o be_v daily_o commemorate_a the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o oblation_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o immaculate_a lamb_n under_o the_o symbol_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o his_o own_o institution_n it_o be_v not_o the_o business_n of_o the_o congregation_n present_a to_o employ_v their_o ear_n in_o attend_v to_o the_o word_n but_o their_o heart_n in_o contemplation_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n by_o raise_v up_o fervent_a affection_n of_o love_n thanksgiving_n compassion_n hope_n sorrow_n for_o sin_n resolution_n of_o amendment_n etc._n etc._n that_o thus_o have_v their_o heart_n and_o intention_n unite_v with_o the_o priest_n they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o prayer_n and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n he_o be_v then_o offer_v than_o which_o he_o believe_v nothing_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n or_o beneficial_a to_o true_a believer_n and_o for_o the_o raise_n of_o these_o affection_n in_o his_o soul_n and_o fill_v his_o heart_n with_o the_o ecstasy_n of_o love_n and_o devotion_n he_o think_v in_o this_o case_n there_o be_v little_a need_n of_o word_n a_o true_a faith_n without_o these_o be_v all-sufficient_a who_o can_v but_o have_v burst_v forth_o into_o tear_n of_o love_n and_o thanksgiving_n if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a while_o our_o saviour_n be_v tie_v to_o pillar_n scourge_v and_o torment_v though_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n to_o the_o bystander_n nor_o speak_v a_o word_n who_o will_v have_v need_v a_o sermon_n to_o have_v be_v fill_v with_o grief_n and_o compassion_n if_o he_o have_v see_v his_o saviour_n expose_v to_o the_o scorn_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o bloody_a spectacle_n by_o pilate_n with_o ecce_fw-la homo_fw-la lo_o the_o man_n who_o can_v have_v stand_v cold_a and_o senseless_a upon_o mount_n calvary_n under_o the_o cross_n when_o his_o redeemer_n be_v hang_v on_o it_o though_o he_o have_v hear_v or_o not_o
in_o communion_n with_o his_o church_n which_o may_v be_v charge_v with_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n and_o those_o not_o a_o few_o nor_o inconsiderable_a who_o not_o only_o allow_v the_o practice_n of_o mental_a reservation_n and_o equivocation_n but_o say_v with_o great_a confidence_n it_o have_v be_v receive_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o no_o less_o than_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o that_o in_o some_o case_n they_o be_v all_o still_o agree_v in_o it_o see_v parson_n treatise_n of_o mitigation_n c._n 7._o sect._n 2.3_o c._n 10_o sect._n 1._o 2._o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o innocent_a xi_o have_v condemn_v equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n in_o swear_v as_o at_o least_o scandalous_a and_o pernicious_a in_o practice_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v charge_v the_o pope_n with_o abet_v this_o doctrine_n but_o we_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o what_o our_o author_n say_v about_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n that_o although_o pope_n have_v believe_v it_o and_o act_v by_o it_o yet_o the_o great_a number_n oppose_v it_o and_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v in_o this_o case_n if_o the_o generality_n of_o their_o casuist_n in_o some_o case_n approve_v it_o and_o think_v it_o no_o lie_n or_o perjury_n as_o in_o that_o of_o confession_n but_o if_o it_o be_v real_o so_o in_o any_o one_o case_n than_o it_o may_v be_v some_o other_o fault_n but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o lie_n or_o perjury_n in_o any_o other_o when_o a_o man_n do_v not_o think_v himself_o bind_v to_o speak_v all_o he_o know_v 3._o that_o as_o we_o high_o commend_v the_o pope_n condemn_v such_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n now_o so_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v the_o contrary_n do_v not_o once_o want_v the_o encouragement_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v as_o may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o some_o case_n by_o pius_n v._o relate_v to_o some_o missionary_n who_o be_v to_o be_v send_v hither_o and_o than_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o if_o they_o be_v summon_v before_o our_o judge_n they_o may_v sophistice_fw-la jurare_fw-la &_o sophistice_fw-la respondere_fw-la etc._n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o judge_n but_o according_a to_o some_o true_a sense_n of_o their_o own_o i._n e._n which_o be_v make_v true_a by_o the_o help_n of_o a_o mental_a reservation_n but_o it_o be_v very_o well_o that_o now_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n be_v condemn_v at_o rome_n as_o scandalous_a and_o pernicious_a in_o practice_n xxvii_o of_o a_o deathbed_n repentance_n he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o a_o total_a neglect_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n of_o all_o virtue_n and_o devotion_n while_o he_o be_v well_o and_o in_o good_a health_n upon_o presumption_n of_o a_o deathbed_n repentance_n and_o a_o confidence_n that_o all_o his_o sin_n will_v be_v certain_o forgive_v if_o he_o can_v but_o once_o say_v lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o at_o the_o last_o hour_n and_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a encouragement_n to_o he_o to_o rely_v whole_o upon_o this_o to_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o profligate_v villain_n none_o that_o have_v live_v though_o to_o the_o height_n of_o wickedness_n and_o debauchery_n of_o his_o communion_n but_o at_o his_o death_n he_o shall_v be_v assist_v by_o a_o priest_n and_o shall_v receive_v a_o absolution_n from_o all_o his_o sin_n with_o a_o absolute_a promise_n of_o be_v soon_o admit_v to_o bass_n and_o reign_v with_o christ_n if_o he_o can_v but_o once_o say_v he_o be_v sorry_a or_o if_o his_o voice_n fail_v he_o signify_v as_o much_o by_o a_o nod_n of_o his_o head_n or_o the_o motion_n of_o a_o finger_n he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o the_o service_n and_o love_n of_o god_n teach_v to_o work_v his_o salvation_n in_o fear_n and_o tremble_a to_o provide_v in_o health_n time_n against_o the_o last_o hour_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o rely_v upon_o a_o deathbed_n repentance_n for_o that_o man_n general_o speak_v as_o they_o live_v so_o they_o die_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v great_o that_o those_o who_o neglect_n god_n alm●ghty_a and_o forsake_v he_o a●l_v their_o life-time_n w●ll_n never_o find_v he_o at_o their_o death_n so_o that_o with_o st._n augustine_n he_o doubt_v the_o salvation_n of_o as_o many_o as_o de●er_v the●r_a conversion_n till_o that_o hour_n and_o have_v no_o encouragement_n at_o all_o to_o do_v it_o however_o if_o any_o be_v find_v t●at_o have_v be_v so_o neglectful_a of_o their_o duty_n as_o to_o put_v ●ff_v this_o great_a business_n of_o eternity_n to_o the_o last_o moment_n he_o be_v teach_v that_o in_o charity_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v all_o assistance_n possible_a to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o condition_n to_o excite_v they_o to_o a_o he●●y_a detestation_n of_o all_o their_o offence_n to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o though_o they_o deserve_v hell-fire_n in_o punishment_n of_o their_o wickedness_n yet_o that_o they_o ou●ht_v by_o no_o mean_n despair_n for_o that_o god_n be_v merciful_a and_o who_o know_v but_o if_o they_o hearty_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o endeavour_v for_o a_o sincere_a repentance_n with_o a_o humble_a confidence_n on_o the_o merit_n and_o passion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o may_v hear_v their_o prayer_n show_v they_o mercy_n and_o give_v they_o time_n to_o repent_v these_o be_v all_o the_o promise_n can_v be_v give_v in_o this_o point_n and_o this_o be_v what_o he_o see_v daily_o practise_v and_o if_o some_o by_o these_o mean_n be_v preserve_v from_o fall_v into_o despair_n it_o be_v well_o but_o as_o for_o any_o receive_n from_o hence_o encouragement_n of_o come_v into_o the_o like_a circumstance_n he_o think_v there_o be_v but_o little_a danger_n especial_o since_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o often_o repeat_v in_o book_n no_o more_o common_a subject_n for_o sermon_n than_o the_o display_v the_o manifold_a peril_n of_o delay_v one_o conversion_n and_o put_v off_o repentance_n till_o the_o last_o hour_n xxvii_o of_o a_o death-bed-repentance_n we_o have_v no_o difference_n with_o they_o about_o this_o matter_n as_o far_o as_o they_o hold_v to_o these_o point_n 1._o that_o man_n be_v strict_o oblige_v to_o work_v out_o their_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a in_o time_n of_o health_n 2._o that_o it_o be_v very_o dangerous_a to_o defer_v their_o repentance_n to_o the_o last_o 3._o that_o if_o any_o be_v surprise_v they_o ought_v in_o charity_n to_o have_v all_o possible_a assistance_n to_o put_v they_o into_o the_o best_a way_n for_o their_o salvation_n but_o yet_o there_o may_v be_v some_o particular_a doctrine_n own_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o may_v give_v man_n too_o much_o encouragement_n to_o put_v off_o true_a repentance_n as_o 1._o the_o easiness_n of_o be_v put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n for_o which_o no_o more_o be_v require_v than_o remove_v the_o impediment_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess._n 7._o can._n 6._o and_o afterward_o it_o define_v that_o bare_a attrition_n do_v sufficient_o dispose_v a_o man_n to_o receive_v grace_n in_o that_o sacrament_n sess._n 14._o c._n 4._o so_o that_o although_o a_o man_n have_v lead_v a_o very_a bad_a life_n if_o he_o have_v but_o this_o attrition_n for_o his_o sin_n when_o he_o do_v confess_v they_o he_o be_v put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o this_o sacrament_n and_o what_o can_v any_o man_n expect_v more_o and_o what_o can_v he_o do_v less_o i_o do_v not_o mean_v a_o bare_a natural_a attrition_n the_o sufficiency_n whereof_o be_v condemn_v by_o innocent_a xi_o in_o the_o same_o proposition_n fifty_o seven_o but_o that_o which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n call_v imperfect_a contrition_n i._n e._n a_o good_a motion_n in_o a_o man_n mind_n to_o forsake_v his_o sin_n for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n if_o real_o no_o more_o be_v require_v for_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n but_o this_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n i●_n man_n put_v off_o the_o do_n of_o that_o which_o may_v be_v do_v at_o any_o time_n so_o easy_o by_o the_o help_n of_o a_o priest_n 2._o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v another_o thing_n which_o be_v very_o apt_a to_o hinder_v man_n speedy_a repentance_n for_o by_o that_o they_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o stock_n ready_a of_o so_o many_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o other_o if_o due_o apply_v to_o they_o by_o indulgence_n that_o they_o need_v not_o be_v at_o such_o pain_n to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a when_o a_o man_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v put_v into_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n the_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v discharge_v and_o nothing_o remain_v but_o some_o temporal_a pain_n and_o to_o ease_v he_o of_o these_o he_o have_v many_o help_n but_o especial_o
the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o dispense_n of_o as_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o by_o indulgence_n he_o may_v easy_o get_v off_o some_o thousand_o of_o year_n of_o purgatory-pain_n and_o if_o these_o shall_v fail_v he_o there_o be_v another_o help_n yet_o leave_v which_o be_v leave_v a_o stock_n of_o prayer_n for_o his_o soul_n when_o he_o die_v which_o even_o our_o author_n assure_v he_o be_v very_o available_a towards_o his_o speedy_a release_n out_o of_o purgatory_n xxviii_o of_o fast_v he_o be_v content_v with_o the_o appearance_n of_o devotion_n and_o look_v not_o beyond_o the_o name_n of_o mortification_n he_o sit_v down_o well_o satisfy_v with_o the_o shadow_n without_o ever_o take_v care_n for_o the_o substance_n and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a pretender_n to_o fast_v and_o the_o denial_n of_o himself_o he_o think_v he_o have_v sufficient_o comply_v with_o his_o duty_n in_o this_o point_n and_o make_v good_a his_o claim_n if_o he_o have_v but_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n and_o though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o regales_fw-la himself_n at_o noon_n with_o all_o variety_n of_o the_o choice_a fish_n and_o stuff_n himself_o at_o night_n with_o the_o best_a conserve_n and_o delicate_a junket_n and_o drink_v all_o day_n the_o pleasant_a wine_n and_o other_o liquor_n yet_o he_o persuade_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v a_o true_o mortify_v man_n that_o he_o have_v most_o christian-like_a commemorate_a the_o bitter_a death_n and_o passion_n of_o his_o redeemer_n and_o do_v a_o work_n of_o great_a force_n in_o order_n to_o the_o suppress_v his_o corrupt_a inclination_n and_o satisfy_v for_o the_o offence_n of_o his_o life_n past_a nay_o he_o have_v such_o a_o preposterous_a conceit_n of_o thing_n that_o he_o believe_v it_o a_o great_a sin_n to_o eat_v the_o least_o bit_n of_o flesh_n on_o a_o fastingday_a than_o to_o be_v downright_o drink_v or_o commit_v any_o other_o excess_n as_o have_v less_o scruple_n of_o break_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n than_o of_o violate_v any_o ordinance_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o law_n of_o his_o church_n his_o church_n te●ches_v he_o that_o the_o appearance_n of_o devotion_n the_o name_n of_o mortification_n and_o pretence_n to_o it_o be_v only_o vain_a and_o fruitless_a thing_n if_o they_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o the_o substance_n and_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o very_a lame_a compliance_n with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a precept_n of_o fast_v to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n unless_o all_o other_o excess_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n careful_o avoid_v it_o be_v true_a his_o church_n have_v not_o forbid_v on_o these_o day_n the_o drink_n of_o wine_n but_o permit_v a_o moderate_a use_n of_o it_o as_o at_o other_o time_n but_o be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v liberty_n to_o any_o of_o her_o flock_n of_o commit_v excess_n that_o she_o declare_v drunkenness_n and_o all_o gluttony_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v more_o heinous_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n on_o such_o day_n than_o on_o any_o other_o they_o be_v express_o contrary_a not_o only_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o also_o to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n which_o appoint_v these_o time_n for_o the_o retrench_a debauchery_n and_o conquer_a our_o vicious_a appetite_n and_o now_o if_o any_o of_o his_o profession_n make_v less_o scruple_n of_o be_v drink_v on_o a_o fastingday_n than_o of_o eat_v the_o least_o bit_n of_o flesh_n he_o know_v nothing_o more_o can_v be_v say_v of_o they_o than_o of_o many_o other_o who_o will_v not_o break_v the_o sabbath-day_n by_o do_v any_o servile_a labour_n on_o it_o for_o all_o the_o world_n look_v on_o this_o as_o a_o most_o damn_v sin_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n have_v little_a scruple_n of_o swear_v curse_v lie_v or_o revel_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o day_n which_o be_v not_o because_o they_o have_v more_o liberty_n for_o these_o than_o the_o former_a they_o be_v all_o most_o wicked_a offence_n but_o because_o they_o that_o do_v thus_o be_v but_o christian_n by_o half_n who_o with_o a_o kind_n of_o pharisaical_a and_o partial_a obedience_n seem_v to_o bear_v some_o of_o the_o commandment_n most_o zealous_o in_o their_o heart_n while_o other_o they_o trample_v under_o their_o foot_n scruple_v many_o time_n at_o a_o moat_n and_o on_o other_o occasion_n pass_v by_o a_o beam_n undiscerned_a for_o which_o their_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v accountable_a but_o they_o themselves_o as_o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o wilful_a blindness_n and_o a_o most_o unchristian_a negligence_n this_o be_v the_o real_a case_n of_o such_o of_o his_o communion_n who_o on_o day_n of_o humiliation_n while_o they_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n yet_o give_v scandal_n by_o their_o intemperateness_n they_o have_v a_o command_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o be_v oblige_v on_o all_o day_n to_o live_v sober_o and_o to_o avoid_v all_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n and_o on_o fasting-day_n beside_o this_o command_n of_o god_n they_o have_v a_o church-precept_n by_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v if_o able_a to_o eat_v but_o one_o meal_n in_o a_o day_n and_o that_o not_o of_o flesh._n and_o now_o if_o some_o be_v so_o inconsiderate_a and_o careless_a as_o to_o be_v scrupulous_o observant_a of_o one_o of_o these_o command_n and_o whole_o negligent_a of_o the_o other_o it_o be_v not_o because_o their_o religion_n teach_v they_o to_o do_v so_o which_o detest_v and_o condemn_v all_o such_o scandalous_a partiality_n and_o comply_v with_o their_o duty_n by_o half_n but_o because_o they_o shut_v their_o ear_n to_o all_o good_a instruction_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o corrupt_a appetite_n than_o the_o wholesome_a doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n xxviii_o of_o fast_v the_o question_n here_o be_v whether_o a_o man_n do_v not_o observe_v their_o church_n command_v about_o fast_v who_o forbear_v all_o forbid_a thing_n but_o take_v liberty_n in_o those_o which_o be_v not_o forbid_v it_o be_v not_o whether_o they_o may_v not_o break_v the_o command_n of_o god_n against_o gluttony_n and_o drunkenness_n but_o whether_o they_o break_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n about_o fast_v and_o notwithstanding_o what_o our_o author_n have_v say_v i_o see_v no_o reason_n for_o the_o affirmative_a i_o do_v not_o deny_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a indifferent_a sort_n of_o fast_v to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n unless_o all_o other_o sort_n of_o excess_n at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v careful_o avoid_v 2._o that_o excess_n on_o such_o day_n be_v more_o scandalous_a because_o there_o be_v a_o pretence_n of_o fast_v 3._o that_o god_n command_n do_v at_o all_o time_n forbid_v intemperance_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n he_o insist_o upon_o but_o yet_o this_o do_v not_o reach_v the_o point_n which_o be_v about_o their_o church_n command_n for_o their_o casuist_n distinguish_v fast_v into_o 1._o natural_a which_o be_v total_a abstinence_n and_o this_o be_v require_v only_o in_o order_n to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n 2._o moral_a which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o temperance_n or_o fast_v for_o health_n 3._o ecclesiastical_a which_o be_v define_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o abstinence_n from_o food_n forbid_v by_o the_o church_n and_o if_o this_o definition_n be_v true_a it_o can_v be_v break_v but_o by_o eat_v what_o the_o church_n have_v prohibit_v and_o therefore_o their_o casuist_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v find_v be_v agree_v in_o these_o thing_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n may_v eat_v a_o full_a meal_n of_o what_o be_v not_o forbid_v and_o not_o break_v the_o church_n precept_n of_o fast_v provide_v vesper_n be_v first_o say_v and_o the_o late_a casuist_n blame_v covarruvias_n for_o make_v any_o scruple_n about_o it_o if_o a_o man_n excess_n come_v to_o be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n 3._o yet_o for_o all_o that_o say_v reginaldus_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v judge_v as_o a_o breaker_n of_o his_o fast._n nay_o lessius_fw-la go_v further_o and_o say_v he_o do_v not_o lose_v the_o merit_n of_o fast_v quamvis_fw-la aliquis_fw-la multum_fw-la excedat_fw-la non_fw-la solvit_fw-la jejunium_fw-la say_v card._n tolet._n and_o paulus_n zacchias_n say_v this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n and_o he_o think_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sufficient_o answer_v and_o so_o do_v pasqualigus_n in_o his_o praxis_fw-la of_o fast_v 2._o a_o man_n may_v drink_v wine_n or_o other_o drink_n as_o often_o as_o he_o please_v without_o break_v his_o fast._n he_o may_v toties_fw-la quoties_fw-la bibere_fw-la say_v diana_n zach._n pasqualigus_n who_o have_v write_v most_o full_o on_o this_o subject_a show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o general_a opinion_n that_o no_o quantity_n of_o wine_n or_o other_o drink_n though_o take_v without_o any_o necessity_n be_v a_o violation_n of_o the_o precept_n of_o fast_v no_o not_o although_o the_o wine_n be_v take_v for_o nourishment_n
because_o the_o church_n do_v not_o forbid_v it_o but_o this_o last_o he_o say_v be_v not_o the_o general_n but_o the_o more_o probable_a opinion_n 3_o a_o man_n may_v eat_v something_o when_o he_o drink_v to_o prevent_v its_o do_v he_o hurt_v beside_o his_o good_a meal_n he_o may_v take_v what_o quantity_n he_o please_v of_o sweetmeat_n or_o fruit_n he_o may_v have_v a_o good_a reflection_n at_o night_n and_o yet_o not_o break_v this_o strict_a precept_n of_o fast_v for_o the_o eat_n as_o often_o as_o one_o drink_v it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n say_v the_o same_o casuist_n who_o be_v no_o jesuit_n that_o it_o be_v not_o forbid_v 185._o because_o it_o be_v take_v by_o way_n of_o a_o medicine_n and_o he_o quote_v a_o great_a number_n of_o their_o casuist_n for_o it_o a_o collation_n at_o evening_n be_v allow_v say_v he_o and_o lessius_fw-la say_v there_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n for_o the_o quantity_n of_o it_o and_o card._n tolet_n say_v very_o large_a one_o be_v allow_v at_o rome_n by_o the_o pope_n connivance_n even_o in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n say_v reginaldus_n and_o now_o i_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o severity_n of_o fast_v require_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n xxix_o of_o division_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n he_o be_v of_o a_o religion_n in_o which_o there_o be_v as_o many_o schism_n as_o family_n and_o they_o be_v so_o divide_v in_o their_o opinion_n that_o common_o as_o many_o as_o meet_v in_o company_n so_o many_o several_a tenet_n be_v maintain_v hence_o arise_v their_o infinite_a and_o endless_a dispute_n and_o disagreement_n of_o their_o divine_n who_o pretend_v to_o give_v a_o true_a and_o solid_a explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o yet_o differ_v in_o as_o many_o point_n as_o they_o write_v of_o beside_o what_o variety_n of_o judgement_n be_v there_o in_o their_o religious_a house_n and_o cloister_n none_o agree_v with_o another_o in_o their_o foundation_n institution_n and_o profession_n this_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n of_o st._n dominick_n that_o of_o st._n francis_n a_o three_o of_o st._n bernard_n other_o of_o st._n benedict_n and_o so_o without_o number_n so_o that_o as_o many_o order_n as_o many_o religion_n and_o yet_o they_o pretend_v to_o christian_a unity_n amid_o this_o diversity_n grow_v upon_o they_o every_o day_n he_o be_v of_o a_o religion_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n or_o separation_n all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o however_o spread_v through_o the_o world_n agree_v like_o one_o man_n in_o every_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o a_o equal_a submission_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o their_o church_n and_o no_o one_o of_o they_o though_o most_o learned_a and_o wise_a ever_o follow_v any_o other_o rule_n in_o their_o faith_n beside_o this_o of_o assent_v to_o all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n plant_v by_o christ_n assist_v and_o protect_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n propose_v to_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o receive_v as_o such_o in_o all_o age_n which_o be_v all_o unanimous_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n believe_v no_o one_o of_o his_o communion_n ever_o doubt_v of_o this_o or_o scruple_v to_o receive_v any_o thing_n after_o his_o church_n declaration_n and_o now_o though_o they_o all_o thus_o conspire_v in_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n yet_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n among_o school_n man_n in_o their_o divinity-point_n and_o opinion_n of_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o it_o but_o as_o some_o circumstance_n or_o manner_n which_o be_v never_o define_v by_o their_o church_n may_v be_v maintain_v several_o either_o this_o or_o that_o way_n without_o any_o breach_n of_o faith_n or_o injury_n to_o their_o religion_n and_o of_o these_o thing_n only_o they_o dispute_v and_o have_v their_o debate_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o school-exercise_n without_o any_o disagreement_n at_o all_o in_o their_o belief_n but_o with_o a_o perfect_a unity_n the_o like_a unity_n be_v there_o among_o their_o religious_a order_n all_o which_o say_v the_o same_o creed_n own_o the_o same_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o every_o thing_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o have_v no_o other_o difference_n than_o as_o it_o be_v of_o so_o many_o several_a step_n or_o degree_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o a_o devout_a and_o holy_a life_n some_o be_v of_o a_o more_o severe_a and_o strict_a discipline_n other_o of_o a_o more_o gentle_a and_o moderate_a some_o spend_v more_o time_n in_o pray_v other_o more_o in_o watch_v other_o more_o in_o fast_v some_o be_v intend_v for_o the_o catechise_n and_o breed_v up_o of_o youth_n other_o for_o take_v care_n of_o hospital_n and_o look_v after_o the_o sick_a other_o for_o go_v among_o infidel_n and_o preach_v to_o they_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o suchlike_a pious_a and_o christian_a design_n to_o the_o great_a glory_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n which_o difference_n make_v no_o other_o difference_n in_o the_o several_a professor_n than_o there_o be_v between_o mary_n and_o martha_n who_o express_v their_o love_n and_o service_n to_o their_o lord_n in_o a_o very_a different_a employ_v but_o both_o commendable_o and_o without_o any_o danger_n of_o prejudice_v the_o unity_n of_o their_o faith_n xxix_o of_o division_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n two_o thing_n he_o say_v upon_o this_o head_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v all_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o that_o they_o only_o differ_v in_o some_o school_n point_n from_o whence_o he_o infer_v that_o they_o have_v no_o schism_n or_o separation_n among_o they_o but_o that_o this_o be_v no_o just_a consequence_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o schism_n and_o separation_n among_o we_o make_v by_o such_o who_o profess_v to_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o agree_v to_o submit_v equal_o to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n now_o this_o very_a way_n evident_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v not_o all_o agree_v because_o they_o do_v not_o equal_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n determination_n for_o 1._o some_o say_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o church_n determination_n as_o it_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n other_o say_v no_o but_o as_o the_o church_n power_n be_v virtual_o lodge_v in_o the_o guide_n of_o it_o now_o this_o be_v a_o very_a material_a difference_n for_o if_o it_o be_v on_o the_o former_a account_n than_o not_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n declaration_n be_v to_o be_v regard_v but_o as_o they_o express_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o so_o the_o majority_n of_o vote_n the_o number_n in_o the_o representative_a and_o diffusive_a church_n be_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o on_o this_o ground_n some_o reject_v the_o depose_v power_n though_o plain_o decree_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o they_o unhinge_v their_o church_n authority_n by_o it_o now_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o agree_v about_o matter_n of_o faith_n who_o differ_v fundamental_o about_o the_o way_n how_o any_o thing_n come_v to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v decree_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n say_v some_o and_o so_o the_o depose_v power_n be_v become_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n no_o such_o matter_n say_v other_o for_o a_o great_a number_n in_o the_o diffusive_a church_n oppose_v it_o as_o in_o the_o gallican_n church_n and_o elsewhere_o very_o well_o but_o how_o then_o can_v these_o party_n be_v say_v to_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o equal_a submission_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o some_o again_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o present_a church_n can_v make_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o there_o must_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o so_o they_o tell_v we_o the_o depose_v power_n can_v never_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o it_o want_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o age_n before_o gregory_n vii_o so_o that_o upon_o this_o ground_n there_o can_v be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v thus_o deliver_v down_o to_o we_o other_o again_o say_v this_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n know_v the_o impossibility_n of_o prove_v particular_a point_n in_o this_o manner_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v the_o present_a church_n be_v whole_o to_o be_v trust_v for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o forego_n now_o these_o difference_n be_v still_o on_o foot_n in_o their_o church_n and_o from_o these_o do_v arise_v daily_a dispute_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n
be_v so_o much_o rather_o question_v because_o those_o who_o assert_v the_o pope_n may_v dispense_v go_v upon_o this_o ground_n because_o circumstance_n may_v alter_v the_o obligation_n of_o a_o vow_n and_o when_o a_o great_a good_a be_v to_o be_v attain_v it_o cease_v to_o oblige_v which_o to_o my_o apprehension_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o pope_n power_n to_o dispense_v but_o the_o dispensable_a nature_n of_o the_o vow_n themselves_o 3._o whether_o all_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v liable_a in_o continuance_n of_o time_n to_o great_a degeneracy_n and_o corruption_n and_o the_o number_n of_o such_o place_n be_v unserviceable_a either_o to_o church_n or_o state_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n and_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o dissolve_v and_o reduce_v they_o to_o way_n more_o suitable_a to_o the_o convenience_n of_o both_o as_o to_o what_o he_o discourse_v about_o council_n of_o perfection_n the_o distraction_n of_o the_o world_n the_o corruption_n of_o the_o best_a thing_n etc._n etc._n they_o reach_v not_o the_o main_a point_n but_o be_v only_o general_a topic_n which_o we_o be_v not_o concern_v to_o debate_v xxxi_o of_o wicked_a principle_n and_o practice_n he_o be_v member_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v call_v holy_a but_o in_o her_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n so_o foul_a and_o abominable_a that_o whosoever_o admire_v she_o for_o sanctity_n may_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n do_v homage_n to_o vice_n itself_o have_v ever_o any_o society_n since_o christ_n time_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n so_o black_a and_o deform_v with_o hellish_a crime_n as_o she_o have_v not_o she_o outdo_v even_o the_o most_o barbarous_a nation_n and_o infidel_n with_o her_o impiety_n and_o draw_v a_o scandal_n upon_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a by_o her_o unparalleled_a vice_n take_v but_o a_o view_n of_o the_o horrid_a practice_n she_o have_v be_v engage_v in_o of_o late_a year_n consider_v the_o french_a and_o irish_a massacre_n the_o murder_n of_o henry_n iii_o and_o iu_o king_n of_o france_n the_o ho●y_a league_n the_o gunpowder_n treason_n the_o cruelty_n of_o queen_n mary_n the_o fire_v of_o london_n the_o late_a plot_n in_o the_o year_n 1678._o to_o subvert_v the_o government_n and_o destroy_v his_o majesty_n the_o death_n of_o sir_n edmundbury_n godfrey_n and_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o other_o suchlike_a devilish_a contrivance_n and_o then_o tell_v i_o whether_o that_o church_n which_o have_v be_v the_o author_n and_o promoter_n of_o such_o barbarous_a design_n aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v holy_a and_o respect_v for_o piety_n and_o religion_n or_o rather_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n which_o have_v pollute_v the_o earth_n with_o her_o wickedness_n and_o teach_v nothing_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o let_v never_o so_o many_o pretence_n be_v make_v yet_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o these_o execrable_a practice_n have_v be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o know_a principle_n of_o this_o holy_a church_n and_o that_o her_o great_a patron_n the_o most_o learned_a of_o her_o divine_n her_o most_o eminent_a bishop_n her_o prelate_n cardinal_n and_o even_o the_o pope_n themselves_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a manager_n of_o these_o hellish_a contrivance_n and_o what_o more_o convince_a argument_n that_o they_o be_v all_o well_o approve_a &_o conform_v to_o the_o religion_n teach_v by_o their_o church_n he_o be_v member_n of_o a_o church_n which_o according_a to_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n he_o believe_v to_o be_v holy_a and_o this_o not_o only_o in_o name_n but_o also_o in_o doctrine_n and_o for_o witness_v of_o her_o sanctity_n he_o appeal_v to_o her_o council_n catechism_n pulpit_n and_o spiritual_a book_n of_o direction_n in_o wh●ch_n the_o main_a design_n be_v to_o imprint_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a this_o comprehensive_a maxim_n of_o christianity_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o love_n god_n above_o all_o thing_n with_o their_o whole_a heart_n and_o soul_n and_o their_o neighbour_n as_o themselves_o and_o that_o none_o flatter_v themselves_o with_o a_o confidence_n to_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n alone_o without_o live_v sober_o just_o and_o pious_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess._n 6._o c._n 11._o so_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o at_o all_o but_o that_o as_o many_o as_o live_v according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o church_n and_o in_o observance_n of_o her_o doctrine_n live_v holy_o in_o the_o service_n of_o and_o fear_v of_o god_n and_o with_o a_o humble_a confidence_n in_o the_o merit_n and_o passion_n of_o their_o redeemer_n may_v hope_v to_o be_v receive_v after_o this_o life_n into_o eternal_a bliss_n but_o that_o all_o in_o communion_n with_o his_o church_n do_v not_o live_v thus_o holy_o and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n he_o know_v it_o be_v too_o too_o evident_a there_o be_v many_o in_o all_o place_n whole_o forgetful_a of_o their_o duty_n give_v themselves_o up_o to_o all_o sort_n of_o vice_n and_o guilty_a of_o most_o horrid_a crime_n and_o though_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v truth_n that_o be_v charge_v upon_o they_o by_o adversary_n there_o be_v no_o narrative_a of_o any_o such_o devilish_a contrivance_n and_o practice_n lay_v to_o they_o wherein_o passion_n and_o fury_n have_v not_o make_v great_a addition_n wherein_o thing_n dubious_a be_v not_o improve_v into_o certainty_n suspicion_n into_o reality_n fear_n and_o jealousy_n into_o substantial_a plot_n and_o downright_o lie_v and_o record_v perjury_n into_o pulpit_n nay_o gospel-truths_n yet_o real_o think_v that_o there_o have_v be_v man_n of_o his_o profession_n of_o every_o rank_n and_o degree_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a high_a and_o low_a secular_a and_o ecclesiastic_a that_o have_v be_v scandalous_a in_o their_o life_n wicked_a in_o their_o design_n without_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n or_o care_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n but_o what_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o vicious_a life_n of_o some_o of_o her_o professor_n and_o her_o doctrine_n to_o stand_v guilty_a of_o as_o many_o villainy_n as_o those_o commit_v who_o neglect_n to_o follow_v it_o if_o so_o let_v the_o man_n of_o that_o society_n judgement_n or_o persuasion_n who_o be_v not_o in_o the_o like_a circumstance_n fling_v the_o first_o stone_n certain_o if_o this_o way_n of_o pass_a sentence_n be_v once_o allow_v as_o just_a and_o reasonable_a there_o never_o be_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v any_o religion_n or_o church_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v but_o reckon_n up_o the_o idolatry_n superstition_n cruelty_n rebellion_n murder_n of_o prince_n impiety_n and_o other_o such_o like_a enormity_n commit_v by_o the_o jew_n as_o they_o stand_v record_v in_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v immediate_o prove_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v never_o the_o choose_a people_n of_o god_n nor_o their_o law_n the_o dictate_v of_o heaven_n it_o be_v but_o make_v a_o lift_v of_o the_o misdemeanour_n irregularity_n abuse_n excess_n treachery_n simony_n separation_n discord_n erroneous_a doctrine_n to_o be_v find_v even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o follower_n and_o they_o be_v all_o effectual_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o the_o world_n redeemer_n have_v no_o soon_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o his_o apostle_n leave_v he_o and_o begin_v to_o set_v up_o for_o schism_n and_o vice_n by_o this_o way_n constantine_n may_v be_v evident_o condemn_v for_o a_o heathen_a because_o he_o murder_v his_o wife_n and_o his_o son_n and_o the_o religion_n of_o theodosius_n be_v mark_v out_o for_o atheism_n because_o by_o his_o order_n seven_o thousand_o thessalonian_n be_v treacherous_o massacre_v in_o three_o hour_n space_n without_o distinction_n of_o sex_n or_o age_n or_o the_o innocent_a from_o the_o guilty_a a_o confident_a undertaker_n will_v find_v no_o difficulty_n in_o prove_v all_o this_o especial_o if_o he_o have_v but_o the_o gift_n of_o exaggerate_v some_o thing_n misrepresent_v other_o of_o find_v authority_n and_o text_n for_o every_o idle_a story_n o●_n charge_v the_o extravagant_a opinion_n of_o every_o single_a author_n upon_o the_o religion_n they_o profess_v of_o rake_v together_o all_o the_o wickedness_n cruelty_n treachery_n plot_n conspiracy_n at_o any_o time_n commit_v by_o any_o ambitious_a desperado_n or_o wicked_a villain_n and_o then_o positive_o assert_v that_o what_o these_o do_v be_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n and_o that_o the_o true_a measure_n of_o the_o sanctity_n and_o goodness_n of_o the_o church_n in_o who_o communion_n these_o man_n be_v may_v be_v just_o take_v from_o the_o behaviour_n of_o such_o offender_n but_o certain_o no_o man_n of_o reason_n and_o conscience_n can_v
allow_v of_o such_o proceed_n no_o sober_a man_n will_v ever_o go_v to_o tyburn_n and_o whetstones-park_n to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o religion_n profess_v in_o england_n according_a to_o law_n nor_o will_v look_v into_o all_o the_o sink_n jakes_n dunghill_n common-shore_n about_o town_n from_o such_o a_o prospect_n to_o give_v a_o true_a description_n of_o the_o city_n why_o therefore_o shall_v the_o character_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o her_o doctrine_n be_v take_v only_o from_o the_o loose_a behaviour_n and_o wicked_a crime_n of_o such_o who_o tho'_o in_o communion_n with_o she_o yet_o live_v n●t_o according_a to_o her_o direction_n she_o teach_v holiness_n of_o life_n mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a loyalty_n and_o obedience_n to_o prince_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n witness_n the_o many_o book_n of_o devotion_n and_o direction_n make_v english_a for_o public_a benefit_n write_v original_o by_o papist_n and_o great_a number_n there_o be_v god_n be_v praise_v who_o practice_n this_o in_o their_o life_n and_o now_o if_o there_o be_v many_o also_o who_o stop_v their_o ear_n to_o good_a instruction_n and_o follow_v the_o suggestion_n of_o their_o own_o ungoverned_a appetite_n of_o pride_n ambition_n covetousness_n luxury_n etc._n etc._n so_o lay_v aside_o all_o concern_v of_o salvation_n and_o become_v unchristian_a both_o to_o god_n and_o their_o neighbour_n that_o they_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o their_o profession_n why_o shall_v the_o church_n be_v represent_v according_a to_o the_o wickedness_n of_o those_o that_o neglect_v her_o doctrine_n and_o not_o rat●er_n by_o the_o piety_n and_o exemplar_n live_v of_o such_o as_o follow_v it_o be_v not_o this_o to_o deal_v by_o she_o if_o we_o may_v use_v such_o a_o comparison_n as_o it_o be_v general_o do_v by_o the_o sign_n of_o st._n dunstan_n near_o temple-bar_n on_o which_o tho'_o the_o saint_n be_v draw_v almost_o in_o the_o full_a proportion_n and_o there_o be_v no_o more_o of_o the_o devil_n on_o it_o beside_o the_o reach_a towards_o he_o with_o a_o pair_n of_o tongue_n yet_o it_o be_v describe_v only_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o devil-tavern_n without_o the_o least_o mention_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o be_v not_o this_o partiality_n unjust_a and_o these_o piecemeal_n description_n unreasonable_a l●t_v the_o character_n of_o the_o church_n be_v give_v according_a to_o what_o she_o teach_v and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o write_n of_o every_o positive_a opiniator_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o every_o wicked_a liver_n and_o then_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o its_o come_n out_o so_o ugly_a and_o deform_v neither_o le●_n any_o one_o pretend_v to_o demonstrate_v the_o faith_n and_o principle_n of_o the_o papist_n by_o the_o work_v of_o every_o divine_a in_o that_o communion_n or_o by_o the_o action_n of_o every_o bishop_n cardinal_z or_o pope_n for_o they_o extend_v not_o their_o faith_n beyond_o the_o declaration_n of_o general-council_n and_o stand_v fast_o to_o these_o they_o yet_o own_o that_o many_o of_o their_o writer_n be_v too_o loose_a in_o their_o opinion_n that_o all_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n be_v not_o so_o edify_v as_o become_v their_o state_n and_o that_o pope_n may_v have_v their_o 〈◊〉_d too_o a_o pope_n be_v a_o temporal_a prince_n keep_v a_o court_n have_v variety_n of_o officer_n ●bou●_n he_o and_o it_o he_o have_v flatterer_n and_o miss_v informer_n too_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o all_o prince_n be_v sensible_a of_o but_o can_v remedy_v and_o hence_o he_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v be_v engage_v in_o unlawful_a undertake_n and_o invite_v other_o to_o the_o like_a and_o be_v not_o all_o other_o prince_n subject_n to_o this_o too_o but_o what_o then_o these_o action_n of_o pope_n concern_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o they_o may_v throw_v a_o scandal_n indeed_o upon_o the_o religion_n but_o they_o can_v never_o alter_v its_o creed_n but_o what_o need_v any_o other_o return_n to_o the_o numerous_a clamour_n make_v daily_o against_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o papist_n it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a vindication_n of_o their_o chief_a pastor_n and_o pope_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n that_o among_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o that_o have_v now_o successive_o bear_v that_o charge_n there_o be_v not_o above_o ten_o or_o twelve_o against_o who_o their_o most_o malicious_a adversary_n can_v find_v occasion_n of_o spit_v their_o venom_n and_o that_o a_o challenge_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o show_v but_o the_o five_o part_n of_o so_o many_o successive_a governor_n since_o the_o creation_n of_o which_o there_o have_v not_o be_v far_o more_o that_o have_v abuse_v their_o power_n and_o as_o for_o their_o flock_n and_o people_n own_v this_o authority_n it_o be_v true_a many_o wicked_a thing_n have_v be_v do_v by_o some_o of_o they_o and_o too_o many_o like_a libertine_n neglect_v the_o care_n of_o their_o soul_n but_o however_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o live_v like_o christians_n few_o come_v to_o they_o but_o with_o their_o religion_n they_o change_v also_o their_o manner_n for_o the_o better_a few_o desert_n they_o but_o such_o who_o seem_v to_o be_v fall_v out_o with_o all_o christianity_n and_o whosoever_o will_v look_v into_o any_o of_o our_o neighbour_a popish_a town_n as_o paris_n antwerp_n gaunt_n etc._n etc._n will_v find_v in_o any_o one_o of_o they_o more_o pray_v more_o fast_v more_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n more_o visit_v of_o prisoner_n and_o the_o sick_a more_o almsgiving_n than_o in_o any_o ten_o town_n of_o the_o reformation_n xxxi_o of_o wicked_a principle_n and_o practice_n the_o misrepresenter_n charge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o many_o horrid_a practice_n as_o the_o french_a and_o irish_a massacre_n the_o murder_n of_o two_o king_n of_o france_n the_o holy_a league_n the_o gun-powder-treason_n etc._n etc._n and_o charge_v these_o as_o be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o that_o church_n but_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o say_v 1._o in_o general_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o be_v holy_a teach_v the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v by_o faith_n alone_o in_o which_o doctrine_n we_o hearty_o concur_v with_o they_o 2._o that_o although_o many_o uncertain_a thing_n pass_v for_o certain_a and_o false_a for_o true_a yet_o he_o can_v deny_v that_o all_o rank_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n have_v be_v corrupt_v among_o they_o be_v scandalous_a in_o their_o life_n wicked_a in_o their_o design_n without_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n or_o care_n of_o their_o own_o salvation_n this_o be_v a_o general_a acknowledgement_n but_o no_o particular_a answer_n to_o the_o thing_n object_v 3._o that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v charge_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o such_o villainy_n very_o true_a unless_o some_o doctrine_n own_v in_o that_o church_n give_v encouragement_n to_o they_o as_o suppose_v any_o shall_v ever_o have_v fall_v into_o rebellion_n upon_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o depose_v power_n be_v not_o that_o doctrine_n chargeable_a with_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o they_o be_v extreme_o to_o blame_v who_o charge_n a_o church_n with_o what_o her_o member_n do_v in_o direct_a opposition_n to_o her_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v quite_o another_o case_n when_o the_o main_a ground_n they_o allege_v for_o their_o action_n be_v some_o allow_a principle_n in_o it_o 4._o they_o be_v not_o accountable_a for_o the_o action_n of_o every_o bishop_n cardinal_z or_o pope_n for_o they_o extend_v not_o their_o faith_n beyond_o the_o declaration_n of_o general_n council_n but_o suppose_v general_a council_n have_v declare_v such_o doctrine_n and_o pope_n act_n but_o according_a to_o they_o be_v not_o their_o church_n then_o accountable_a for_o their_o action_n 5._o there_o be_v more_o pray_v and_o fast_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n more_o visit_v the_o prisoner_n and_o the_o sick_a more_o almsgiving_n in_o any_o of_o our_o neighbour_a popish_a town_n as_o paris_n antwerp_n gant_n etc._n etc._n than_o in_o any_o ten_o town_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o be_v there_o more_o charity_n too_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v if_o they_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o censure_v other_o and_o admire_v themselves_o as_o our_o author_n who_o so_o free_o give_v his_o judgement_n about_o a_o matter_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o know_v we_o see_v no_o reason_n to_o admire_v or_o imitate_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o pray_v and_o fast_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n for_o to_o pray_v without_o understanding_n to_o fast_o without_o abstinence_n to_o receive_v a_o maim_a sacrament_n be_v thing_n we_o do_v not_o envy_v they_o for_o but_o althô_o our_o devotion_n be_v not_o so_o pompous_a and_o full_a of_o show_n yet_o we_o
mother-tongue_n of_o instruction_n and_o devotion_n wherein_o be_v explicate_v the_o whole_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a every_o mystery_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o office_n and_o ceremony_n perform_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o must_v be_v very_o negligent_a or_o else_o very_o mean_o part_v who_o do_v not_o arrive_v to_o a_o sufficient_a knowledge_n of_o the●r_a obligation_n in_o every_o respect_n and_o whosoever_o have_v see_v the_o great_a pain_n and_o care_n some_o good_a man_n take_v abroad_o in_o explicate_v on_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n in_o their_o church_n and_o on_o weekday_n in_o the_o street_n the_o christian_a doctrine_n to_o the_o crowd_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o mean_a sort_n of_o people_n not_o omit_v to_o reward_v such_o as_o answer_v well_o with_o some_o small_a gift_n to_o encourage_v youth_n and_o provoke_v they_o to_o a_o commendable_a emulation_n will_n never_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n keep_v the_o poor_a people_n in_o ignorance_n and_o hide_v from_o they_o their_o religion_n but_o rather_o that_o they_o use_v all_o mean_n for_o instruct_v the_o ignorant_a and_o omit_v nothing_o that_o can_v any_o way_n conduce_v to_o the_o breed_n up_o of_o youth_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o let_v they_o see_v into_o the_o religion_n they_o be_v to_o profess_v neither_o do_v it_o seem_v to_o he_o even_o so_o much_o as_o probable_a that_o if_o the_o church-office_n and_o service_n etc._n etc._n be_v perform_v in_o the_o vulgar-tongue_n that_o upon_o this_o the_o now-ignorant_a and_o blind_a people_n will_v immediate_o discover_v so_o many_o idle_a superstition_n senseless_a devotion_n and_o gross_a error_n that_o they_o will_v in_o great_a number_n upon_o the_o sight_n become_v deserter_n of_o that_o communion_n in_o which_o now_o they_o be_v profess_v member_n for_o since_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v but_o in_o a_o language_n which_o the_o learned_a judicious_a and_o lead_v man_n of_o all_o nation_n do_v every_o where_o understand_v and_o yet_o these_o espy_v no_o such_o ridiculosity_n which_o fright_v they_o from_o their_o faith_n but_o notwithstanding_o the_o see_v all_o through_o and_o through_o they_o yet_o admire_v all_o for_o solid_a holy_a and_o apostolical_a and_o remain_v steadfast_a in_o their_o profession_n how_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o vulgar_a weak_a and_o unlearned_a sort_n do_v they_o but_o understand_v all_o as_o well_o as_o they_o will_v espy_v any_o such_o error_n and_o superstition_n which_o these_o other_o with_o all_o their_o learning_n and_o judgement_n can_v discover_v no_o he_o think_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o fear_v that_o what_o pass_v the_o test_n among_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a can_v be_v ground_o call_v in_o question_n by_o the_o multitude_n xxxiv_o of_o breed_v up_o people_n in_o ignorance_n the_o misrepresenter_n charge_v they_o with_o this_o on_o these_o account_n 1._o by_o keep_v their_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n from_o they_o 2._o by_o perform_v divine_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 3._o by_o a_o implicit_a faith_n to_o which_o the_o representer_n answer_v 1._o that_o they_o give_v encouragement_n to_o learning_n and_o he_o instance_n in_o their_o university_n and_o conventual_a library_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o common_a people_n but_o their_o indices_fw-la expurgatorii_n and_o prohibit_v book_n so_o severe_o which_o be_v not_o for_o their_o turn_n as_o we_o have_v late_o see_v in_o the_o new_a one_o of_o paris_n argue_v no_o great_a confidence_n of_o their_o cause_n nor_o any_o hearty_a love_n to_o learning_n and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v root_v out_o of_o the_o world_n their_o church_n will_v fare_v the_o better_a in_o it_o but_o if_o it_o can_v they_o must_v have_v some_o to_o be_v able_a to_o deal_v with_o other_o in_o it_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o common_a people_n he_o say_v they_o have_v book_n enough_o to_o instruct_v they_o be_v it_o so_o in_o spain_n or_o italy_n but_o where_o they_o live_v among_o heretic_n as_o we_o be_v call_v the_o people_n must_v be_v a_o little_a better_o instruct_v to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o to_o gain_v upon_o other_o 3._o if_o the_o people_n do_v know_v their_o church_n office_n and_o service_n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v not_o find_v such_o fault_n since_o the_o learned_a approve_v they_o let_v they_o then_o try_v the_o experiment_n and_o put_v the_o bible_n and_o their_o church-office_n every_o where_o into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o their_o severe_a prohibition_n show_v how_o much_o they_o be_v of_o another_o opinion_n what_o make_v all_o that_o rage_n in_o france_n against_o voisins_n translation_n of_o the_o missal_n such_o proceed_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o clergy_n against_o it_o such_o complaint_n both_o to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o pope_n against_o it_o as_o though_o all_o be_v lose_v if_o that_o be_v suffer_v such_o a_o edict_n from_o the_o king_n such_o a_o prohibition_n from_o the_o pope_n in_o such_o a_o tragical_a style_n about_o it_o such_o a_o 1661._o collection_n of_o author_n to_o be_v print_v on_o purpose_n against_o it_o do_v th●se_a thing_n show_v even_o in_o a_o nation_n of_o so_o free_a a_o temper_n in_o comparison_n as_o the_o french_a any_o mighty_a inclination_n towards_o the_o encourage_n this_o knowledge_n in_o the_o people_n and_o since_o that_o what_o stir_v have_v there_o be_v about_o the_o mons_fw-la testament_n what_o prohibition_n by_o bishop_n beside_o a_o bull_n from_o this_o very_a pope_n against_o it_o what_o vehement_a opposition_n by_o other_o so_o that_o many_o volume_n have_v already_o be_v write_v on_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o translation_n and_o yet_o our_o author_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o if_o we_o look_v abroad_o we_o shall_v find_v wonderful_a care_n take_v to_o keep_v the_o people_n from_o ignorance_n but_o we_o can_v discern_v much_o great_a to_o keep_v they_o in_o it_o xxxv_o of_o the_o uncharitableness_n of_o the_o papist_n his_o church_n teach_v he_o to_o be_v very_o uncharitable_a it_o be_v her_o constant_a doctrine_n that_o none_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n can_v be_v save_v so_o that_o let_v a_o man_n be_v never_o so_o honest_a in_o his_o deal_v never_o so_o just_a to_o his_o neighbour_n never_o so_o charitable_a to_o the_o poor_a and_o constant_a in_o his_o devotion_n to_o his_o maker_n yet_o all_o this_o shall_v avail_v he_o nothing_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o his_o church_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o he_o to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o confess_v he_o his_o redeemer_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o he_o rise_v again_o and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n unless_o he_o believe_v and_o assent_v to_o every_o article_n and_o tenet_n declare_v by_o any_o of_o his_o general_a council_n for_o that_o obstinate_o to_o deny_v any_o one_o of_o these_o do_v as_o certain_o place_v he_o at_o the_o left_a hand_n of_o the_o judge_n as_o if_o he_o perverse_o stand_v out_o against_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n as_o many_o as_o by_o his_o church_n be_v mark_v out_o for_o schismatic_n or_o heretic_n be_v to_o expect_v nothing_o but_o damnation_n or_o rather_o be_v condemn_v already_o his_o church_n teach_v he_o no_o uncharitableness_n at_o all_o and_o the_o doctrine_n she_o deliver_v concern_v the_o desperate_a estate_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v nothing_o but_o what_o she_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n among_o the_o last_o advice_n recommend_v by_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o ascension_n be_v find_v the_o sentence_n of_o doom_n pronounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o gospel_n say_v christ_n mark_v 16.16_o to_o every_o creature_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o this_o be_v all_o his_o church_n deliver_v in_o this_o point_n repeat_v the_o same_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o all_o such_o as_o will_v not_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n leave_v by_o christ_n and_o preach_v by_o his_o apostle_n and_o if_o among_o those_o that_o believe_v not_o she_o comprehend_v not_o only_a infidel_n and_o heathen_n but_o also_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n who_o do_v not_o only_o shake_v the_o dust_n off_o their_o feet_n in_o witness_n against_o those_o who_o deny_v they_o entrance_n and_o refuse_v to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n but_o also_o denounce_v such_o of_o the_o brethren_n to_o stand_v guilty_a of_o damnation_n who_o notwithstanding_o their_o belief_n in_o jesus_n that_o he_o die_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o man_n and_o that_o rise_v again_o he_o ascend_v into_o
whosoever_o disbelieve_v one_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n disbelieve_v all_o there_o be_v no_o more_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o one_o that_o deny_v obstinate_o any_o one_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n tho'_o he_o believe_v all_o the_o rest_n then_o there_o be_v for_o one_o who_o keep_v nine_o of_o the_o commandment_n with_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o ten_o a_o obstinate_a opposition_n against_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o sin_n against_o one_o commandment_n be_v as_o certain_o damnable_a as_o if_o it_o be_v against_o all_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n and_o a_o equal_a necessity_n that_o the_o observance_n of_o god'●_n law_n and_o the_o assent_n to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v alike_o entire_a and_o whole_a and_o now_o be_v convince_v that_o none_o can_v believe_v to_o salvation_n but_o he_o that_o embrace_v the_o catholic_n faith_n thus_o whole_o and_o entire_o by_o a_o equal_a submission_n to_o all_o the_o mystery_n contain_v in_o it_o without_o opposition_n to_o any_o and_o be_v likewise_o convince_v that_o no_o one_o can_v arrive_v to_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o this_o faith_n with_o a_o assurance_n of_o its_o integrity_n but_o by_o receive_v it_o as_o propose_v and_o believe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o church_n be_v found_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n water_v with_o his_o blood_n and_o by_o a_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v teach_v all_o truth_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v secure_v from_o the_o danger_n of_o be_v deceive_v or_o deceive_v other_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o thing_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_n but_o as_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n so_o also_o ever_o since_o and_o at_o present_a god_n add_v to_o his_o church_n daily_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v act_n 2.47_o there_o be_v no_o entire_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v find_v out_o of_o this_o church_n and_o no_o possibility_n as_o st._n cyprian_n say_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v a_o father_n to_o any_o who_o own_v not_o this_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n but_o now_o where_o and_o which_o this_o church_n be_v and_o what_o society_n of_o man_n be_v member_n of_o it_o among_o such_o variety_n of_o pretender_n though_o it_o may_v seem_v a_o great_a difficulty_n to_o some_o to_o distinguish_v yet_o to_o he_o it_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o since_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_n catholic_n which_o have_v have_v a_o continue_a and_o visible_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n in_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n no_o other_o that_o have_v convert_v infidel_n nation_n to_o christianity_n no_o other_o that_o have_v always_o preserve_v peace_n and_o unity_n among_o its_o member_n all_o of_o they_o speak_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o be_v perfect_o join_v together_o in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o the_o same_o judgement_n no_o other_o that_o by_o assemble_v the_o elder_n and_o prelate_n have_v oppose_v in_o all_o age_n heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o condemn_v all_o those_o who_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n have_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n endeavour_v to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o no_o other_o that_o have_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n send_v apostle_n among_o infidel_n and_o unbeliever_n for_o the_o preach_n to_o they_o the_o gospel_n and_o instruct_v they_o in_o christianity_n and_o by_o this_o way_n without_o arm_n or_o blood_n have_v spread_v their_o faith_n throughout_o the_o world_n no_o other_o that_o by_o evident_a and_o undeniable_a miracle_n have_v prove_v the_o truth_n of_o her_o doctrine_n no_o other_o but_o what_o have_v begin_v by_o separation_n who_o first_o preacher_n have_v go_v out_o from_o this_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o preach_v and_o show_v themselves_o to_o the_o world_n be_v upon_o record_n and_o their_o new_a doctrine_n censure_v and_o condemn_v by_o that_o church_n from_o whence_o they_o separate_v since_o i_o say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o society_n or_o christian_a congregation_n in_o the_o world_n to_o which_o these_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v agree_v it_o be_v evident_a to_o he_o that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n that_o whosoever_o deny_v any_o article_n of_o her_o faith_n deny_v so_o much_o of_o christ_n doctrine_n that_o whosoever_o hear_v she_o hear_v christ_n and_o whosoever_o obstinate_o and_o wilful_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o be_v in_o the_o same_o distance_n separate_v from_o christ_n himself_o and_o final_o that_o god_n add_v to_o this_o church_n daily_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v act_n 2.47_o xxxv_o of_o the_o vncharitableness_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o missrepresenter_n as_o he_o be_v call_v charge_v this_o point_n home_o because_o they_o deny_v salvation_n to_o those_o who_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o lead_v virtuous_a and_o good_a life_n if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n to_o this_o the_o representer_n answer_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o muster_v up_o all_o their_o say_n against_o infidel_n false_a prophet_n gnostic_n corinthian_n as_o tho'_o they_o be_v pointblank_o level_v against_o all_o that_o live_v out_o of_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v no_o uncharitableness_n but_o pure_a zeal_n and_o the_o same_o the_o primitive_a church_n show_v against_o heretic_n such_o as_o martion_n basilides_n and_o bardesanes_n who_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o first_o age_n for_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n what_o in_o the_o first_o age_n methinks_v the_o second_o have_v be_v early_o enough_o for_o they_o but_o this_o be_v to_o let_v we_o see_v what_o learning_n there_o be_v among_o you_o but_o do_v we_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a or_o hold_v any_o one_o of_o the_o heresy_n condemn_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n what_o then_o be_v our_o fault_n which_o can_v merit_v so_o severe_a a_o sentence_n we_o oppose_v the_o church_n what_o church_n the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o general_a council_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o will_v be_v say_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v what_o church_n then_o the_o present_a church_n be_v it_o then_o damnable_a to_o oppose_v the_o present_a church_n but_o i_o pray_v let_v we_o know_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o it_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n no_o no_o abundance_n of_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n as_o well_o as_o we_o i._n e._n all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o eastern_a and_o southern_a part_n who_o be_v not_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o two_o part_n in_o three_o of_o christian_n be_v send_v to_o hell_n by_o this_o principle_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o uncharitableness_n but_o suppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n must_v man_n be_v damn_v present_o for_o oppose_v its_o doctrine_n i_o pray_v think_v a_o little_a better_o on_o it_o and_o you_o will_v change_v your_o mind_n suppose_v a_o man_n do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o guide_n of_o this_o church_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n declare_v by_o they_o must_v he_o be_v damn_v what_o if_o it_o be_v the_o depose_v power_n yet_o his_o principle_n be_v if_o a_o man_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o faith_n entire_a he_o be_v go_v but_o pope_n and_o council_n have_v declare_v this_o to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n therefore_o if_o he_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o he_o must_v be_v damn_v there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o answer_v this_o but_o he_o must_v abate_v the_o severity_n of_o his_o sentence_n against_o we_o for_o upon_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o question_n that_o we_o may_v question_v many_o more_o and_o all_o his_o argument_n against_o we_o will_v hold_v against_o himself_o for_o say_v he_o he_o that_o disbelieve_v one_o article_n of_o catholic_n faith_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n disbelieve_v all_o let_v he_o therefore_o look_v to_o it_o as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o ordinary_a note_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n although_o he_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o do_v it_o yet_o this_o will_v not_o do_v his_o business_n for_o he_o must_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o indeed_o he_o may_v charge_v we_o with_o obstinate_a opposition_n but_o not_o before_o and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a strange_a thing_n to_o i_o that_o when_o their_o divine_n
say_v that_o infidel_n shall_v not_o be_v damn_v for_o their_o infidelity_n where_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o and_o no_o christian_a for_o not_o believe_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n till_o it_o be_v so_o propose_v that_o we_o must_v be_v damn_v for_o not_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n which_o never_o have_v be_v and_o never_o can_v be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o methinks_v such_o man_n shall_v study_v a_o little_a better_o their_o own_o doctrine_n about_o the_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n before_o they_o pass_v such_o uncharitable_a and_o unlearned_a censure_n xxxvi_o of_o ceremony_n and_o ordinance_n his_o church_n upon_o the_o presumption_n of_o be_v apostolical_a and_o commissioned_n by_o christ_n have_v bring_v in_o such_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o unnecessary_a superstitious_a ceremony_n that_o the_o whole_a exercise_n of_o her_o religion_n consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o a_o vain_a pomp_n and_o empty_a show_n and_o whereas_o christian_n be_v command_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n she_o have_v make_v void_a this_o precept_n and_o neglect_v both_o spirit_n and_o truth_n have_v restore_v the_o heavy_a yoke_n of_o jewish_a rite_n without_o the_o least_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o in_o express_a opposition_n to_o it_o have_v make_v these_o her_o humane_a invention_n take_v place_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o then_o beside_o her_o ceremony_n what_o a_o endless_a account_n be_v there_o of_o other_o ordinance_n institution_n precept_n to_o which_o she_o oblige_v all_o in_o her_o communion_n how_o many_o be_v her_o fast-day_n rogation_n and_o ember-day_n how_o many_o her_o festival_n and_o holiday_n how_o many_o her_o injunction_n on_o several_a degree_n of_o people_n that_o priest_n shall_v not_o marry_o that_o whosoever_o be_v in_o order_n shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o the_o recite_v or_o sing_v such_o and_o such_o office_n that_o marriage_n shall_v not_o be_v permit_v but_o at_o some_o set_a time_n and_o a_o multitude_n of_o other_o such_o respective_a command_n which_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o scripture_n and_o no_o other_o authority_n for_o they_o beside_o the_o decree_n of_o some_o pope_n who_o for_o some_o private_a end_n and_o the_o make_v themselves_o great_a think_v fit_a to_o lay_v these_o burden_n upon_o the_o people_n some_o be_v first_o institute_v by_o pope_n telesporus_fw-la as_o the_o fast_a of_o lent_n some_o by_o cal●xtus_n as_o the_o ember-day_n some_o by_o pope_n nicholas_n as_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n and_o so_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o yet_o forsooth_o all_o these_o must_v be_v observe_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n as_o if_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n command_v be_v but_o all_o one_o and_o have_v heaven_n and_o hell_n equal_o at_o their_o disposure_n his_o church_n have_v appoint_v a_o great_a number_n and_o variety_n of_o ceremony_n to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o celebrate_v divine_a service_n in_o the_o office_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n she_o have_v likewise_o many_o observance_n ordinance_n constitution_n appertain_v to_o discipline_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o all_o these_o be_v receive_v approve_a or_o institute_v by_o she_o every_o one_o in_o her_o communion_n do_v embrace_v admit_v and_o willing_o submit_v to_o without_o opposition_n exception_n or_o call_v any_o into_o question_n because_o although_o the_o particular_n thus_o appoint_v or_o command_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n yet_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n a_o express_a and_o absolute_a command_n give_v to_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n of_o follow_v and_o be_v obedient_a to_o those_o that_o have_v thus_o order_v these_o thing_n in_o virtue_n of_o that_o command_n they_o voluntary_o and_o without_o constraint_n accept_v all_o that_o be_v of_o their_o appointment_n without_o except_v against_o any_o thing_n unless_o it_o be_v manifest_o sinful_a and_o this_o they_o look_v on_o as_o a_o christian_a duty_n belong_v to_o all_o such_o that_o be_v by_o god_n pleasure_n in_o subjection_n to_o the_o high_a power_n or_o under_o charge_n and_o therefore_o as_o a_o servant_n have_v receive_v a_o command_n from_o his_o master_n be_v oblige_v to_o comply_v with_o it_o in_o case_n it_o be_v not_o sinful_a although_o he_o can_v find_v the_o thing_n then_o particular_o command_v in_o scripture_n the_o general_a precept_n of_o servant_n be_v obedient_a to_o master_n be_v sufficient_a to_o let_v he_o know_v his_o obligation_n and_o to_o remove_v all_o scruple_n and_o as_o child_n be_v in_o duty_n oblige_v to_o perform_v the_o will_n of_o their_o parent_n upon_o the_o command_n obey_v thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n whether_o the_o thing_n particular_o will_v be_v in_o scripture_n or_o no_o so_o they_o judge_v it_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_a people_n to_o submit_v without_o contention_n to_o the_o ordinance_n and_o constitution_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n although_o the_o thing_n particular_o order_v by_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o this_o their_o submission_n and_o obedience_n that_o god_n have_v give_v they_o a_o general_n command_n obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v account_n hebrew_n 13.17_o remember_v they_o which_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o who_o have_v speak_v to_o you_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o faith_n follow_v hebrew_n 13_o 7._o so_o that_o to_o they_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a fallacious_a rule_n lead_v to_o all_o confusion_n and_o unchristian_a comention_n viz._n that_o the_o high_a power_n our_o superior_n pastor_n and_o prelate_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v but_o only_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n and_o as_o for_o any_o other_o particular_n whosoever_o upon_o examination_n can_v find_v what_o be_v command_v by_o they_o in_o holy_a writ_n may_v lawful_o refuse_v submission_n nay_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o resist_v for_o however_o this_o seem_v to_o bear_v much_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o it_o yet_o certain_o it_o be_v whole_o destructive_a to_o it_o and_o under_o pretence_n of_o adhere_v close_o to_o the_o scripture_n undermine_v the_o very_a author_n of_o it_o this_o the_o primitive_a christian_n understand_v so_o well_o that_o they_o detest_v all_o such_o maxim_n and_o follow_v the_o advice_n of_o the_o apostle_n choose_v rather_o to_o trust_v their_o soul_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o who_o god_n have_v place_v over_o they_o by_o a_o humble_a submission_n to_o the_o government_n and_o a_o peaceable_a obedience_n to_o their_o decree_n than_o by_o a_o presumptuous_a question_n of_o every_o thing_n and_o raise_v vain_a dispute_n to_o take_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o flock_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o to_o who_o god_n have_v providential_o deliver_v it_o and_o place_n themselves_o judge_n over_o the_o church_n their_o elder_n prelate_n and_o pastor_n who_o god_n have_v command_v they_o to_o hear_v and_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o so_o that_o we_o never_o read_v that_o they_o ever_o pretend_v to_o weigh_v the_o ordinance_n of_o their_o superior_n by_o their_o own_o reason_n or_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o test_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n before_o the_o acceptance_n but_o always_o judge_v it_o conform_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o their_o governor_n shall_v rule_v and_o they_o obey_v thus_o when_o the_o apostle_n observe_v the_o sunday_n instead_o of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o meet_v together_o at_o pentecost_n we_o do_v read_v that_o the_o faithful_a then_o begin_v to_o turn_v over_o their_o bibles_n to_o find_v a_o command_n for_o these_o particular_n but_o with_o a_o prompt_a obedience_n ready_o follow_v they_o in_o the_o observance_n so_o when_o abstinence_n from_o blood_n and_o strangle_a meat_n be_v order_v by_o the_o elder_n assemble_v at_o jerusalem_n act_n 15._o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n have_v hear_v the_o decree_n never_o murmur_v at_o it_o or_o call_v it_o into_o question_n however_o seem_o contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o abrogate_a the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v think_v to_o have_v cut_v off_o all_o these_o obligation_n but_o they_o all_o rejoice_v for_o the_o consolation_n ib._n v._n 31._o so_o when_o st._n paul_n give_v order_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 1_o cor._n 11._o in_o what_o manner_n and_o posture_n they_o be_v to_o behave_v themselves_o at_o prayer_n in_o their_o assembly_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n we_o do_v hear_v that_o he_o be_v challenge_v by_o any_o to_o show_v by_o what_o authority_n of_o scripture_n he_o thus_o reprove_v and_o prescribe_v in_o these_o particular_n or_o by_o what_o they_o
be_v oblige_v to_o receive_v his_o prescription_n but_o with_o a_o prompt_a submission_n accept_v his_o order_n not_o doubt_v but_o since_o it_o be_v god_n will_n to_o place_n ruler_n and_o governor_n over_o they_o it_o must_v be_v god_n will_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v obedient_a to_o they_o in_o follow_v their_o decree_n and_o observe_v their_o constitution_n and_o with_o this_o doctrine_n of_o obedience_n humility_n and_o submission_n all_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v train_v up_o by_o the_o apostle_n who_o zealous_o labour_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o preserve_v they_o in_o peace_n and_o unity_n that_o so_o they_o may_v think_v all_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o one_o judgement_n and_o without_o division_n insomuch_o that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o thing_n so_o often_o repeat_v in_o their_o write_n as_o exhortation_n to_o this_o obedience_n and_o submission_n see_v how_o go_v through_o the_o city_n they_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o faithful_a the_o decree_n for_o to_o keep_v that_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n act_n ●6_z 4._o see_v how_o st._n paul_n command_v the_o thessalonian_n to_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n they_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o word_n or_o by_o epistle_n 2_o thess._n 2.15_o see_v how_o he_o command_v the_o hebrew_n obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o remember_v they_o which_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o heb._n 13.7.17_o see_v with_o what_o earnestness_n st._n john_n urge_v this_o he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n hear_v we_o not_o 1_o joh._n 4.6_o hereby_o know_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o then_o again_o do_v not_o st._n paul_n commend_v the_o corinthian_n for_o their_o obedience_n now_o i_o praise_v you_o brethren_n that_o you_o remember_v i_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o keep_v the_o ordinance_n as_o i_o deliver_v they_o to_o you_o 1_o cor._n 11.2_o and_o then_o have_v give_v they_o direction_n as_o to_o their_o behaviour_n in_o their_o assembly_n he_o add_v but_o if_o any_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v contentious_a we_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 11.16_o and_o now_o it_o be_v thus_o evident_a that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v found_v and_o preserve_v by_o a_o submission_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o their_o pastor_n the_o papist_n teach_v and_o believe_v that_o what_o be_v teach_v and_o command_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o faithful_a then_o live_v aught_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o doctrine_n necessary_a for_o all_o succeed_a age_n and_o that_o submission_n and_o obedience_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v as_o much_o the_o duty_n of_o believer_n ever_o since_o as_o it_o be_v then_o the_o command_n and_o practice_n of_o that_o time_n be_v undoubted_o the_o best_a and_o only_o pattern_n for_o the_o faithful_a for_o all_o time_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o they_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n of_o submission_n in_o their_o book_n and_o sermon_n but_o also_o observe_v it_o in_o their_o life_n have_v in_o all_o age_n depend_v on_o their_o elder_n and_o prelate_n in_o all_o matter_n touch_v the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n leave_v rule_n to_o those_o who_o charge_n and_o office_n it_o be_v to_o rule_v and_o never_o believe_v that_o they_o who_o be_v under_o charge_n and_o command_v express_o by_o st._n paul_n to_o remember_v and_o obey_v those_o who_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o they_o can_v upon_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o nay_o tho'_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v come_v and_o preach_v otherwise_o be_v discharge_v from_o this_o christian_a obligation_n and_o be_v exempt_v from_o remember_v and_o obey_v who_o thus_o by_o god_n speak_v by_o his_o apostle_n they_o be_v command_v to_o remember_v and_o obey_v and_o upon_o this_o ground_n it_o be_v that_o in_o thing_n concern_v the_o order_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o divine_a service_n in_o all_o ceremony_n holy_a rite_n ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o ordinance_n they_o have_v neither_o will_v nor_o will_v of_o their_o own_o but_o always_o receive_v and_o think_v that_o the_o best_a which_o be_v order_v and_o appoint_v by_o those_o to_o who_o by_o divine_a law_n they_o owe_v this_o submission_n and_o obedience_n and_o to_o who_o the_o order_v and_o appoint_v these_o thing_n appertain_v and_o therefore_o if_o these_o appoint_v a_o day_n of_o humiliation_n for_o implore_v god_n mercy_n or_o avert_v his_o judgement_n they_o never_o scruple_n to_o observe_v it_o if_o a_o day_n of_o thanksgiving_n in_o memory_n of_o some_o signal_n benefit_n they_o likewise_o obey_v if_o these_o judge_v it_o fit_a that_o on_o every_o friday_n shall_v be_v commemorate_a the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o redeemer_n in_o fast_v and_o command_v lend_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o remembrance_n and_o imitation_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v 40_o day_n fast_o in_o the_o desert_n they_o think_v it_o their_o obligation_n to_o do_v so_o if_o these_o order_n such_o and_o such_o day_n to_o be_v set_v apart_o and_o keep_v holy_a in_o remembrance_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o incarnation_n nativity_n circumcision_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o other_o such_o like_a intention_n they_o esteem_v it_o sinful_a to_o oppose_v it_o if_o these_o judge_v it_o decent_a that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n stand_v at_o the_o read_n of_o the_o gospel_n prostrate_a or_o incline_v themselves_o at_o the_o confession_n if_o they_o appoint_v taper_n and_o lamp_n to_o be_v use_v in_o church_n to_o represent_v our_o saviour_n who_o come_v to_o enlighten_v the_o world_n and_o incense_n to_o be_v use_v to_o mind_v the_o people_n that_o their_o heart_n and_o prayer_n shall_v l●ke_v the_o smoke_n ascend_v direct_o towards_o heaven_n if_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o exorcism_n in_o the_o office_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n these_o determine_v several_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o more_o decency_n great_a solemnity_n and_o that_o by_o such_o exterior_a help_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a may_v be_v move_v to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o raise_v more_o sensible_o to_o the_o apprehension_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n in_o who_o honour_n all_o be_v perform_v they_o look_v upon_o themselves_o bind_v to_o allow_v and_o embrace_v all_o these_o thing_n without_o reluctance_n or_o opposition_n always_o think_v that_o to_o be_v most_o proper_a which_o be_v institute_v by_o such_o who_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o they_o and_o if_o any_o endeavour_n to_o raise_v dispute_n and_o be_v contentious_a concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o these_o institution_n they_o have_v no_o such_o custom_n neither_o the_o church_n of_o god_n one_o thing_n they_o know_v to_o be_v necessary_a that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v obedient_a and_o that_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n they_o must_v not_o honour_v he_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v isa._n 58.13_o by_o do_v their_o own_o way_n find_v their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o speak_v their_o own_o word_n but_o as_o christian_n be_v command_v in_o a_o true_a self-denial_n a_o sincere_a humility_n and_o obedience_n submit_v to_o those_o who_o god_n have_v leave_v to_o rule_v and_o govern_v the_o flock_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o danger_n of_o fall_v back_o into_o the_o jewish_a law_n by_o approve_v the_o allow_v ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n all_o ceremony_n be_v not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n extinct_a but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v mere_a type_n and_o figure_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v in_o the_o new_a law_n which_o be_v now_o fulfil_v whilst_o other_o fit_a for_o the_o raise_n devotion_n and_o express_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o other_o such_o end_n be_v still_o commendable_o retain_v as_o lawful_a and_o equal_o necessary_a now_o as_o heretofore_o such_o be_v kneeling_z fast_v lift_v hand_n and_o eye_n to_o heaven_n sigh_v knock_v the_o breast_n day_n of_o humiliation_n thanksgiving_n watch_v haircloth_n sing_v imposition_n of_o hand_n benediction_n use_v oil_n hospital_n breathe_v etc._n etc._n all_o which_o ●re_n as_o lawful_a convenient_a and_o necessary_a for_o christian_n as_o they_o be_v for_o jew_n and_o no_o more_o to_o be_v neglect_v because_o they_o be_v use_v in_o the_o old_a law_n than_o pray_v meet_v read_v the_o law_n sing_v psalm_n humility_n and_o obedience_n etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v lay_v by_o and_o disow_v by_o christian_n because_o they_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o jew_n especial_o since_o these_o with_o many_o other_o have_v be_v
recommend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o all_o primitive_a christianity_n neither_o have_v the_o use_n of_o holy_a ceremony_n be_v whole_o disapprove_v by_o those_o of_o the_o reformation_n the_o english_a profession_n of_o faith_n publish_v in_o the_o year_n 1562._o allow_v they_o in_o the_o 34_o the_o article_n the_o bohemick_a confession_n in_o the_o 15_o the_o article_n anno_fw-la 1537._o the_o augustine_n tit._n de_fw-fr miss_z anno_fw-la 1530._o as_o it_o be_v pen_v by_o melancthon_n so_o that_o since_o ceremony_n be_v general_o look_v on_o as_o commendable_a and_o lawful_a among_o christian_n the_o papist_n judge_v it_o proper_a to_o those_o who_o have_v the_o rule_n to_o order_n and_o dispose_v of_o they_o and_o declare_v to_o the_o flock_n how_o when_o and_o where_o they_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o if_o they_o who_o govern_v judge_v fit_a to_o oblige_v the_o faithful_a to_o the_o observance_n of_o any_o in_o particular_a they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o obey_v thing_n indifferent_a after_o such_o command_n be_v no_o long_o of_o choice_n but_o necessary_a and_o no_o less_o oblige_v than_o the_o command_v of_o a_o father_n to_o his_o child_n where_o in_o case_n the_o thing_n be_v not_o apparent_o sinful_a it_o be_v no_o persuasion_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v superfluous_a can_v excuse_v a_o obstinate_a denial_n from_o disobedience_n it_o be_v more_o safe_a and_o christian_n like_a for_o all_o that_o be_v under_o any_o government_n whether_o natural_a ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a to_o perform_v and_o comply_v with_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o judge_v in_o their_o own_o private_a sentiment_n unnecessary_a m●rely_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o be_v command_v than_o upon_o such_o consideration_n to_o disturb_v the_o order_n of_o government_n and_o fly_v in_o the_o face_n of_o lawful_a authority_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o opposite_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o christianity_n and_o destructive_a of_o all_o humane_a society_n and_o upon_o these_o ground_n it_o be_v that_o the_o papist_n sound_v themselves_o upon_o the_o sure_a foundation_n of_o huminity_n and_o obedience_n have_v in_o all_o age_n acknowledge_v overseer_n and_o ruler_n over_o they_o to_o watch_v and_o feed_v the_o flock_n to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v power_n there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n and_o that_o whosoever_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n roman_n 13.1_o 2._o xxxvi_o of_o ceremony_n and_o ordinance_n his_o discourse_n on_o this_o head_n be_v against_o those_o who_o refuse_v to_o obey_v their_o superior_n in_o thing_n not_o express_v in_o scripture_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o our_o controversy_n with_o they_o but_o yet_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n about_o their_o ceremony_n we_o be_v not_o satisfy_v in_o as_o 1._o the_o mighty_a number_n of_o they_o which_o have_v so_o much_o muffle_v up_o the_o sacrament_n that_o their_o true_a face_n can_v be_v discern_v 2._o the_o efficacy_n attribute_v to_o they_o without_o any_o promise_n from_o god_n whereas_o we_o own_v no_o more_o but_o decency_n and_o significancy_n 3._o the_o doctrine_n that_o go_v along_o with_o they_o not_o only_o of_o obedience_n but_o of_o merit_n and_o some_o have_v assert_v the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la of_o ceremony_n as_o well_o as_o sacrament_n when_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n go_v along_o with_o they_o i._n e._n when_o there_o have_v be_v some_o act_n of_o the_o church_n exercise_v about_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o as_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o oil_n salt_n bread_n ash_n water_n etc._n etc._n xxxvii_o of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n his_o church_n have_v make_v several_a innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o howsoever_o she_o lay_v claim_v to_o antiquity_n with_o a_o pretence_n of_o have_v preserve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n inviolable_a and_o entire_a yet_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o serious_a observer_n that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o her_o belief_n be_v mere_a novelty_n that_o bear_v date_n from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n but_o only_o from_o some_o of_o she_o own_o more_o modern_a synod_n there_o scarce_o have_v pass_v any_o age_n yet_o wherein_o there_o have_v not_o in_o these_o ecclesiastical_a mint_n be_v coin_v new_a article_n which_o with_o the_o counterfeit_a stamp_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v make_v to_o pass_v for_o good_a and_o currant_n among_o his_o credulous_a and_o undiscerning_a retainer_n and_o beside_o these_o what_o a_o great_a number_n of_o error_n have_v be_v introduce_v at_o other_o time_n how_o many_o do_v pope_n gregory_n bring_v in_o and_o how_o many_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o ten_o age_n so_o that_o if_o we_o compare_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o with_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o first_o three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o two_o thing_n so_o unlike_a she_o be_v a_o garden_n now_o but_o quite_o overgrow_v with_o weed_n she_o be_v a_o field_n but_o where_o the_o tare_n have_v perfect_o choke_v up_o the_o wheat_n and_o have_v little_a in_o she_o of_o apostolical_a beside_o the_o name_n his_o church_n have_v never_o make_v any_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n what_o she_o believe_v and_o teach_v now_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n believe_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o first_o three_o or_o four_o century_n after_o the_o apostle_n and_o though_o in_o most_o of_o her_o general_a council_n there_o have_v be_v several_a decision_n touch_v point_n of_o faith_n yet_o can_v no_o one_o without_o a_o injury_n to_o truth_n say_v that_o in_o any_o of_o these_o have_v be_v coin_v new_a article_n or_o christian_n force_v to_o the_o acceptance_n of_o novelty_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a tradition_n these_o have_v only_o tread_v in_o the_o apostle_n step_n as_o often_o as_o they_o have_v be_v in_o the_o like_a circumstance_n with_o they_o do_v exact_o according_a to_o the_o form_n and_o example_n leave_v to_o the_o church_n by_o those_o perfect_a master_n of_o christianity_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o assembly_n act_v 15._o determine_v the_o controversy_n concern_v the_o circumcision_n and_o propose_v to_o the_o faithful_a what_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o point_n of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o which_o till_o that_o decision_n there_o have_v be_v raise_v several_a question_n and_o doubt_n but_o now_o no_o long_o to_o be_v question_v without_o the_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n so_o in_o all_o succeed_a age_n the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o apostle_n leave_v their_o commission_n of_o watch_v over_o the_o flock_n in_o their_o council_n have_v never_o scruple_v to_o determine_v all_o such_o point_n which_o have_v be_v controvert_v among_o the_o brethren_n and_o to_o propose_v to_o they_o what_o of_o necessity_n they_o be_v to_o believe_v for_o the_o future_a with_o anathema_n pronounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v presume_v to_o preach_v the_o contrary_n thus_o in_o the_o year_n 325._o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n declare_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a to_o his_o father_n against_o the_o arian_n with_o a_o obligation_n on_o all_o to_o assent_v to_o this_o doctrine_n though_o never_o till_o then_o propose_v or_o declare_v in_o that_o form_n thus_o in_o the_o year_n 381._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v god_n against_o macedonius_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o the_o first_o constantinopolitan_a council_n and_o in_o the_o first_o ephesin_n anno_fw-la 431._o nestorius_n be_v condemn_v who_o maintain_v two_o person_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n with_o a_o declaration_n that_o both_o these_o tenet_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n anno_fw-la 787._o image-breaker_n be_v anathematise_v and_o so_o other_o at_o other_o time_n and_o at_o last_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v declare_v the_o real_a presence_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n of_o keep_v holy_a image_n etc._n etc._n against_o luther_n calvin_n beza_n etc._n etc._n and_o now_o though_o in_o all_o these_o and_o the_o other_o general_a council_n the_o person_n condemn_v take_v occasion_n from_o these_o new_a declaration_n to_o cry_v out_o novelty_n novelty_n to_o fright_v the_o people_n with_o the_o noise_n of_o new_a coin_a article_n and_o that_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n be_v impose_v on_o they_o for_o faith_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o new_a declaration_n contain_v nothing_o but_o the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o that_o there_o have_v never_o be_v any_o such_o declaration_n make_v have_v not_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v in_o they_o
be_v oppose_v and_o contradict_v by_o some_o seduce_a spirit_n who_o go_v out_o from_o the_o flock_n endeavour_v by_o make_v division_n to_o draw_v number_n after_o they_o so_o that_o the_o new_a proposal_n of_o a_o tenet_n be_v but_o a_o fallacious_a proof_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v late_o invent_v but_o a_o good_a argument_n of_o its_o be_v late_o oppose_v it_o be_v certain_a from_o scripture_n act_v 15._o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v never_o declare_v the_o nonnecessity_n of_o circumcision_n have_v not_o certain_a man_n come_v down_o from_o judea_n and_o teach_v the_o brethren_n the_o contrary_a and_o that_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n have_v never_o be_v define_v by_o the_o nicene_n father_n have_v not_o arius_n with_o his_o follower_n oppose_v this_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o as_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v be_v altogether_o silent_a as_o to_o transubstantiation_n pray_v to_o saint_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n have_v not_o luther_n calvin_n and_o their_o disciple_n once_o professor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n go_v out_o from_o the_o flock_n and_o upon_o the_o presumption_n of_o a_o new_a light_n endeavour_v to_o persuade_v the_o faithful_a that_o these_o tenet_n then_o believe_v by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v own_a but_o to_o be_v quite_o throw_v by_o as_o antichristian_a and_o diabolical_a it_o be_v this_o oblige_v the_o pastor_n to_o watch_v and_o take_v care_n of_o their_o flock_n and_o therefore_o not_o fly_v away_o as_o the_o hireling_n do_v when_o the_o wolf_n catch_v and_o scatter_v the_o sheep_n they_o assemble_v together_o in_o a_o body_n and_o declare_v to_o all_o under_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v stranger_n that_o howsoever_o they_o come_v pretend_v to_o the_o shepherd_n voice_n yet_o since_o they_o come_v not_o by_o the_o door_n into_o the_o sheepfold_n but_o climb_v up_o some_o other_o way_n they_o be_v no_o shepherd_n but_o thief_n and_o robber_n such_o who_o business_n be_v not_o to_o feed_v but_o to_o steal_v kill_v and_o destroy_v it_o be_v this_o make_v they_o encourage_v all_o under_o their_o care_n not_o to_o waver_v but_o to_o stand_v fast_o and_o hold_v the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o notwithstanding_o all_o pretence_n by_o no_o mean_n to_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v delude_v and_o lead_v away_o with_o strange_a doctrine_n and_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o secure_v they_o from_o fall_v into_o error_n they_o give_v they_o a_o draught_n of_o their_o christian_a doctrine_n especial_o of_o all_o those_o point_n which_o these_o modern_a self_n commissionated_a apostle_n do_v preach_v against_o and_o endeavour_v to_o undermine_v particular_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o faith_n they_o have_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n and_o be_v derive_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n secure_v they_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o be_v novelty_n and_o error_n and_o now_o in_o the_o pastor_n declare_v this_o to_o the_o faithful_a where_o be_v the_o innovation_n the_o council_n do_v nothing_o but_o propose_v full_o and_o explicate_o what_o before_o their_o meeting_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o christendom_n and_o have_v be_v so_o among_o the_o primitive_a father_n it_o be_v they_o make_v innovation_n who_o preach_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n thus_o believe_v and_o receive_v which_o luther_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o own_v himself_o guilty_a of_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v then_o corrupt_v and_o the_o religion_n than_o every_o where_o profess_v be_v overgrow_v with_o superstition_n error_n and_o abomination_n such_o as_o have_v creep_v into_o the_o church_n some_o five_o hundred_o year_n before_o some_o nine_o hundred_o and_o some_o a_o thousand_o and_o it_o be_v from_o these_o luther_n separate_v intend_v to_o reform_v christianity_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v it_o not_o very_o strange_a now_o that_o so_o many_o gross_a foolery_n idle_a superstition_n and_o even_o downright_a idolatry_n shall_v c●eep_v into_o a_o church_n and_o spread_v itself_o through_o all_o nation_n infect_v the_o whole_a world_n become_v the_o public_a profession_n of_o christendom_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o be_v confirm_v and_o establish_v by_o the_o law_n of_o every_o kingdom_n and_o that_o no_o body_n shall_v take_v notice_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n either_o at_o its_o first_o rise_n or_o in_o all_o its_o progress_n of_o so_o many_o year_n insomuch_o that_o have_v not_o luther_n make_v the_o discovery_n it_o be_v likely_a we_o shall_v never_o have_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thousand_o year_n error_n and_o corruption_n no_o think_v man_n certain_o but_o judge_n it_o impossible_a that_o the_o very_a fundamental_o of_o christianity_n shall_v be_v shake_v and_o the_o religion_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n turn_v into_o idolatry_n and_o yet_o that_o no_o lean_v man_n shall_v any_o where_o appear_v to_o contradict_v these_o abomination_n no_o zealous_a pastor_n to_o withstand_v they_o no_o pious_a prince_n to_o oppose_v they_o history_n sufficient_o satisfy_v any_o curious_a reader_n that_o from_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o church_n there_o have_v be_v in_o no_o age_n any_o man_n yet_o that_o have_v preach_v any_o heterodox_n and_o erroneous_a tenet_n and_o by_o introduce_v novelty_n have_v endeavour_v to_o infect_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a with_o heresy_n and_o superstition_n but_o immediate_o have_v stand_v up_o virtuous_a and_o learned_a man_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o their_o write_n and_o sermon_n public_o confute_v and_o condemn_v the_o error_n and_o give_v a_o alarm_n to_o the_o world_n to_o beware_v of_o such_o deceiver_n and_o their_o wicked_a doctrine_n and_o withal_o never_o omit_v to_o record_v their_o name_n to_o posterity_n with_o a_o account_n of_o the_o year_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o preach_v under_o what_o emperor_n and_o what_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o their_o revolt_n be_v not_o all_o this_o and_o even_o more_o do_v against_o arius_n how_o many_o appear_v against_o the_o manichee_n how_o many_o against_o the_o donatist_n against_o the_o novatian_o against_o the_o macedonian_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychian_o the_o pelagian_n the_o berengarian_o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o never_o any_o thing_n have_v make_v so_o much_o noise_n in_o the_o world_n so_o many_o commotion_n so_o many_o disturbance_n nothing_o as_o be_v so_o impossible_a to_o be_v carry_v on_o with_o secrecy_n and_o silence_n as_o the_o broach_v any_o new_a heresy_n the_o make_v a_o schism_n the_o alteration_n of_o religion_n the_o start_n up_o of_o some_o new_a society_n and_o pretender_n to_o reformation_n what_o tumult_n do_v all_o the_o forementioned_a apostle_n raise_v disturb_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n and_o the_o cry_v up_o the_o alcoran_n what_o stir_v and_o commotion_n at_o the_o reformation_n of_o church_n and_o faith_n pretend_v by_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la and_o calvin_n how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v judge_v in_o the_o least_o probable_a that_o great_a variety_n of_o erroneous_a tenet_n and_o antichristian_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v introduce_v by_o the_o papist_n contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o christianity_n either_o in_o the_o four_o five_o six_o or_o ten_o century_n and_o yet_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o least_o disturbance_n occasion_v by_o it_o not_o tumult_n or_o opposition_n but_o all_o do_v with_o so_o much_o quietness_n in_o such_o a_o profound_a peace_n and_o silence_n that_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o the_o news_n bring_v some_o age_n after_o we_o have_v never_o suspect_v the_o alteration_n and_o be_v this_o possible_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n shall_v change_v their_o religion_n both_o as_o to_o the_o internal_a belief_n and_o external_a profession_n and_o exercise_n of_o it_o and_o no_o body_n be_v sensible_a of_o the_o change_n so_o as_o to_o withstand_v the_o abomination_n or_o to_o transmit_v to_o posterity_n even_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o word_n of_o its_o beginning_n or_o propogation_n let_v any_o man_n upon_o some_o consideration_n tell_v i_o whether_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o this_o one_o little_a kingdom_n of_o england_n shall_v fall_v from_o this_o pure_a apostolical_a doctrine_n it_o now_o profess_v into_o down_o right_a popery_n or_o any_o other_o way_n alter_v the_o whole_a scheme_n of_o its_o religion_n and_o have_v the_o alteration_n confirm_v by_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o it_o for_o a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o or_o even_o one_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o no_o one_o in_o this_o kingdom_n or_o out_o
word_n whensoever_o any_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v to_o be_v out_v and_o may_v to_o be_v make_v for_o a_o novelty_n and_o he_o do_v not_o doubt_n but_o that_o if_o the_o noise_n of_o novelty_n continue_v long_o so_o unhappy_o successful_a as_o of_o late_a and_o the_o liberty_n be_v permit_v to_o every_o presume_a spirit_n to_o fix_v this_o scandal_n upon_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n or_o institution_n they_o shall_v think_v fit_a that_o all_o christianity_n be_v in_o a_o fai●_n way_n of_o be_v throw_v out_o of_o door_n and_o the_o bible_n preach_v catechise_v christ_n incarnation_n and_o passion_n etc._n etc._n be_v as_o likely_a to_o b●_n cast_v off_o for_o a_o novelty_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v be_v those_o that_o will_v but_o show_v to_o the_o people_n that_o even_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v all_o receive_v from_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o missionary_n spread_v these_o doctrine_n over_o the_o world_n may_v soon_o persuade_v they_o they_o be_v nothing_o but_o popish_a invention_n mere_a novelty_n that_o those_o that_o begin_v the_o reformation_n do_v their_o business_n by_o half_n and_o that_o the_o world_n will_v never_o be_v thorough_o reform_v till_o all_o these_o romish_a superstition_n be_v lay_v by_o with_o the_o rest_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o date_n he_o take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o of_o all_o the_o clamour_n raise_v against_o several_a point_n of_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o his_o church_n his_o faith_n be_v found_v on_o better_a principle_n than_o to_o be_v shake_v with_o such_o a_o vulgar_a engine_n novelty_n novelty_n be_v a_o cry_n that_o may_v fright_v unthinking_a man_n from_o their_o religion_n but_o every_o serious_a man_n will_v require_v better_a motive_n than_o a_o noise_n before_o he_o forsake_v any_o point_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v join_v with_o any_o in_o condemn_v such_o thing_n for_o novelty_n which_o he_o find_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o antiquity_n xxxvii_o of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o discourse_n on_o this_o head_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o these_o thing_n 1._o that_o the_o church_n in_o every_o age_n have_v power_n to_o declare_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v with_o anathema_n to_o those_o who_o preach_v the_o contrary_a and_o so_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o declare_v transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v necessary_a article_n do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o church_n have_v do_v before_o on_o like_a occasion_n 2._o that_o if_o the_o doctrine_n then_o define_v have_v be_v innovation_n they_o must_v have_v meet_v with_o great_a opposition_n when_o they_o be_v introduce_v 3._o that_o those_o who_o charge_v those_o point_n to_o be_v innovation_n may_v as_o well_o have_v lay_v the_o scandal_n on_o any_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o retain_v these_o be_v thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v examine_v in_o order_n to_o the_o make_v good_a the_o charge_n of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o believe_v do_v stand_v on_o very_o good_a ground_n 1._o we_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v equal_a reason_n to_o define_v the_o necessity_n of_o these_o point_n as_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o constantinople_n have_v to_o determine_v the_o point_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o those_o of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n the_o truth_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n he_o do_v not_o assert_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o do_v imply_v new_a doctrine_n reveal_v but_o he_o contend_v earnest_o that_o the_o church_n have_v a_o power_n to_o declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v some_o point_n which_o be_v not_o so_o declare_v before_o and_o if_o the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v do_v depend_v upon_o the_o church_n declaration_n than_o he_o must_v assert_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n power_n to_o make_v point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o so_o and_o consequent_o to_o make_v common_a opinion_n to_o become_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v have_v leave_n to_o inquire_v in_o this_o case_n since_o the_o church_n pretend_v to_o no_o new_a revelation_n of_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n therefore_o it_o can_v declare_v no_o more_o than_o it_o receive_v and_o no_o otherwise_o than_o it_o receive_v and_o so_o nothing_o can_v be_v make_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o what_o god_n himself_o have_v make_v so_o by_o his_o revelation_n so_o that_o they_o must_v go_v in_o their_o declaration_n either_o upon_o scripture_n or_o universal_a tradition_n but_o if_o they_o define_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v necessary_a without_o these_o ground_n they_o exceed_v their_o commission_n and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o submit_v to_o their_o decree_n or_o to_o believe_v their_o declaration_n to_o make_v this_o more_o plain_a by_o a_o know_a instance_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o several_a pope_n and_o council_n have_v declare_v the_o dispose_v doctrine_n and_o yet_o our_o author_n say_v it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n with_o he_o why_o not_o since_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n have_v as_o evident_o deliver_v it_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v do_v purgatory_n or_o transubstantiation_n but_o he_o may_v say_v there_o be_v no_o anathema_n join_v to_o it_o suppose_v there_o be_v not_o but_o why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o other_o case_n and_o if_o it_o be_v i_o wou●d_v know_v whether_o in_o his_o conscience_n he_o will_v then_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n tho'_o he_o believe_v that_o it_o want_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n if_o not_o than_o he_o seee_v what_o this_o matter_n be_v bring_v to_o viz._n that_o althô_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n declare_v these_o new_a doctrine_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v yet_o if_o their_o declaration_n be_v not_o build_v on_o scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o receive_v it_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o impossibility_n of_o innovation_n come_v in_o without_o notorious_a opposition_n i_o see_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o for_o it_o where_o the_o alteration_n be_v not_o make_v at_o once_o but_o proceed_v gradual_o he_o may_v as_o well_o prove_v it_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o fall_v into_o a_o dropsy_n or_o a_o hectick-fever_n unless_o he_o can_v tell_v the_o punctual_a time_n when_o it_o begin_v and_o he_o may_v as_o well_o argue_v thus_o such_o a_o man_n fall_v into_o a_o fever_n upon_o a_o great_a debauch_n and_o the_o physician_n be_v present_o send_v for_o to_o advise_v about_o he_o therefore_o the_o other_o man_n have_v no_o chronical_a distemper_n because_o he_o have_v no_o physician_n when_o he_o be_v first_o sick_a as_o because_o council_n be_v call_v against_o some_o heresy_n and_o great_a opposition_n make_v to_o they_o therefore_o where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a there_o can_v be_v no_o innovation_n but_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v decline_v give_v a_o account_n by_o what_o degree_n and_o step_v and_o upon_o what_o occasion_n and_o with_o what_o opposition_n several_a of_o the_o doctrine_n define_v at_o trent_n be_v bring_v in_o for_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o so_o obscure_a as_o you_o will_v make_v it_o as_o to_o most_o of_o the_o point_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o but_o that_o be_v too_o large_a a_o task_n to_o be_v here_o undertake_v 3._o there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o call_v in_o question_n the_o article_n of_o faith_n receive_v by_o we_o on_o the_o same_o ground_n that_o we_o reject_v those_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n for_o we_o have_v the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o the_o apostle_n creed_n &_o of_o the_o 4_o general_a council_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n who_o never_o pretend_v to_o determine_v any_o point_n to_o be_v necessary_a which_o be_v not_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n who_o sense_n be_v deliver_v down_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n proceed_v by_o a_o very_a different_a rule_n quarta_fw-la for_o it_o first_o set_v up_o a_o unwritten_a word_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o the_o write_a which_o althô_o it_o be_v necessary_a in_o order_n to_o their_o decree_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a innovation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o they_o be_v there_o establish_v the_o conclusion_n these_o be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o papist_n as_o he_o be_v misrepresent_v and_o as_o represent_v and_o as_o different_a as_o the_o one_o be_v from_o the_o other_o so_o different_a be_v the_o p●pist_n as_o repute_v by_o his_o maligner_n
from_o the_o papist_n as_o to_o what_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o the_o one_o be_v so_o absurd_a and_o monstrous_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o one_o to_o be_v of_o that_o profession_n without_o first_o lay_v by_o all_o thought_n of_o christianity_n and_o his_o reason_n the_o other_o be_v just_a contradictory_n to_o this_o and_o without_o any_o far_a apology_n may_v be_v expose_v to_o the_o perusal_n of_o all_o prudent_a and_o unpassionate_a considerer_n to_o examine_v if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o deserve_v the_o hatred_n of_o any_o christian_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o every_o point_n whole_o conform_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o in_o the_o least_o contrary_a to_o reason_n the_o former_a be_v a_o papist_n as_o he_o be_v general_o apprehend_v by_o those_o who_o have_v a_o protestant_a education_n such_o as_o whensoever_o reflect_v on_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v a_o perverse_a malicious_a sort_n of_o creature_n superstitious_a idolatrous_a atheistical_a cruel_a bloody-minded_n barbarous_a treacherous_a and_o so_o profane_a and_o every_o way_n inhuman_a that_o it_o be_v in_o some_o manner_n doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v man_n or_o no._n the_o other_o be_v a_o papist_n who_o faith_n be_v according_a to_o the_o proposal_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o by_o christ_n command_n he_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o hear_v and_o who_o whole_a design_n in_o this_o world_n be_v for_o obtain_v salvation_n in_o the_o next_o and_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a that_o these_o two_o character_n so_o direct_o opposite_a so_o whole_o unlike_o one_o the_o other_o that_o heaven_n and_o hell_n be_v not_o more_o shall_v agree_v to_o the_o same_o person_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o strange_a piece_n of_o injustice_n and_o yet_o not_o at_o all_o strange_a to_o those_o who_o know_v that_o they_o that_o follow_v christ_n shall_v be_v hate_v by_o the_o world_n that_o those_o who_o study_v the_o wisdom_n of_o heaven_n shall_v have_v the_o repute_n of_o fool_n and_o that_o as_o many_o as_o attend_v the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v paint_v in_o the_o livery_n of_o satan_n our_o forefather_n be_v so_o before_o we_o all_o the_o primitive_a christian_n the_o apostle_n and_o even_o the_o lamb_n himself_o our_o redeemer_n calumny_n ever_o follow_v they_o mis_n representation_n wait_v upon_o they_o and_o what_o wonder_v that_o infamy_n be_v their_o constant_a attendance_n and_o now_o if_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n have_v thus_o in_o all_o age_n have_v their_o double_a character_n one_o of_o justice_n exact_o draw_v from_o what_o they_o real_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o other_o of_o malice_n copy_v from_o they_o as_o misrepresent_v it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o strange_a to_o find_v it_o so_o now_o in_o our_o day_n when_o calumny_n malice_n ignorance_n etc._n etc._n be_v as_o powerful_a as_o ever_o who_o though_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v above_o five_o thousand_o year_n they_o have_v make_v it_o their_o chief_a business_n to_o paint_n copy_n and_o represent_v thing_n and_o person_n yet_o they_o never_o do_v it_o with_o so_o much_o injury_n so_o altogether_o unlikely_a as_o they_o do_v now_o to_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o profession_n which_o they_o do_v not_o blind_o mistake_v or_o base_o disguise_v the_o papist_n believe_v it_o be_v convenient_a to_o pray_v before_o holy_a image_n and_o give_v they_o a_o inferior_a or_o relative_a respect_n these_o describe_v the_o papist_n pray_v to_o image_n and_o worship_v they_o as_o idol_n the_o papist_n believe_v it_o be_v good_a to_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o honour_v they_o as_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n these_o paint_n out_o the_o papist_n as_o believe_a saint_n to_o be_v their_o redeemer_n and_o adore_v they_o as_o go_n the_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n leave_v a_o power_n in_o the_o priest_n of_o his_o church_n to_o absolve_v all_o true_o penitent_a sinner_n from_o their_o offence_n these_o represent_v the_o papist_n as_o believe_v that_o the_o priest_n can_v infallible_o forgive_v all_o such_o as_o come_v to_o confession_n whether_o they_o repent_v or_o no._n the_o papist_n believe_v there_o be_v power_n in_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n upon_o due_a motive_n of_o grant_v indulgence_n that_o be_v of_o release_n to_o the_o faithful_a such_o temporal_a penalty_n as_o remain_v due_a to_o their_o past_a sin_n already_o remit_v as_o to_o their_o guilt_n on_o condition_n they_o perform_v such_o christian_a duty_n as_o shall_v be_v assign_v they_o i._n e._n humble_a themselves_o by_o fast_v confess_v their_o sin_n with_o a_o hearty_a repentance_n receive_v worthy_o and_o give_v alm_n to_o the_o poor_a etc._n etc._n these_o make_v the_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n can_v give_v they_o leave_v to_o commit_v what_o sin_n they_o shall_v think_v ●it_a with_o a_o certain_a pardon_n for_o all_o crime_n already_o incur_v and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o danger_n of_o damnation_n to_o any_o that_o can_v but_o make_v a_o large_a present_n to_o rome_n at_o his_o death_n the_o papist_n believe_v that_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n the_o good_a work_n of_o a_o just_a man_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o through_o his_o goodness_n and_o promise_v meritorious_a of_o eternal_a happiness_n these_o report_n that_o the_o papist_n believe_v they_o can_v merit_v heaven_n by_o their_o own_o work_n without_o any_o dependence_n on_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o papists_n worship_v christ_n real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n true_a god_n and_o man._n these_o say_v they_o fall_v down_o to_o and_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n some_o papist_n maintain_v the_o depose_v power_n these_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o it_o by_o their_o religion_n some_o papist_n have_v be_v traitor_n rebel_n conspirator_n etc._n etc._n these_o make_v these_o villainy_n to_o be_v meritorious_a among_o the_o papist_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o church_n and_o thus_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o thing_n belong_v to_o their_o faith_n and_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o be_v not_o wrong_v in_o the_o describe_v it_o and_o injurious_o misrepresent_v and_o if_o any_o be_v so_o curious_a as_o to_o desire_v to_o be_v satisfy_v how_o this_o come_v about_o let_v he_o but_o stand_v by_o any_o of_o the_o undertaker_n while_o they_o be_v take_v the_o copy_n of_o popery_n and_o observe_v their_o method_n and_o he_o may_v soon_o come_v to_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o mystery_n he_o may_v see_v they_o serious_o view_v some_o of_o her_o tenet_n and_o upon_o a_o short_a consideration_n immediate_o to_o fall_v to_o the_o make_v inference_n and_o deduce_a consequence_n than_o down_o go_v these_o for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o go_v on_o and_o see_v other_o of_o her_o tenet_n and_o these_o contain_v mystery_n such_o as_o reason_n can_v reach_v to_o when_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o assistant_n they_o be_v present_o follow_v with_o variety_n of_o absurdity_n and_o seem_a contradiction_n and_o down_o go_v these_o to_o the_o former_a for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o passion_n to_o other_o and_o these_o be_v not_o conform_v to_o the_o principle_n of_o their_o education_n several_a misconstruction_n be_v present_o raise_v upon_o they_o and_o down_o go_v these_o for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o look_v forward_o and_o see_v other_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o which_o many_o abuse_n have_v be_v commit_v then_o down_o go_v the_o abuse_n for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n hence_o they_o turn_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o as_o many_o disorder_n and_o extravagance_n as_o they_o find_v there_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o inquire_v into_o the_o action_n and_o life_n of_o her_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n and_o as_o many_o vice_n as_o many_o wicked_a design_n they_o discover_v there_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o examine_v the_o behaviour_n of_o her_o professor_n and_o whatsoever_o villainy_n whatsoever_o treason_n and_o inhumanities_n they_o find_v commit_v by_o any_o that_o own_o themselves_o member_n of_o that_o communion_n down_o they_o all_o go_v for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o hear_v the_o report_n of_o such_o as_o have_v desert_v her_o authority_n and_o though_o through_o th●●r_a extravagancy_n and_o rashness_n they_o deserve_v not_o credit_v even_o in_o a_o trifle_n yet_o their_o whole_a narrative_n shall_v be_v accept_v and_o all_o their_o idle_a stor●es_n be_v sum_v up_o for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o peruse_v every_o scurrilous_a pamphlet_n and_o abusive_a libel_n and_o such_o ridiculous_a f●bles_n as_o be_v only_o sit_v for_o a_o chimney
they_o borrow_v thence_o and_o set_v they_o down_o for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n they_o turn_v over_o every_o p●pish_a author_n and_o whatsoever_o light_n loose_a or_o extravagant_a opinion_n whatsoever_o discourse_v carry_v on_o either_o through_o flattery_n disgust_n or_o faction_n appear_v in_o any_o of_o they_o they_o be_v all_o mark_v out_o for_o so_o many_o article_n of_o popery_n and_o by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a mean_n be_v finish_v at_o last_o a_o complete_a draught_n of_o popery_n in_o which_o she_o be_v render_v so_o foul_a monstrous_a and_o abominable_a that_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o rake_v from_o the_o very_a sink_n of_o turcism_n nothing_o borrow_a from_o the_o wild_a african_n or_o barbarous_a american_n that_o can_v make_v she_o more_o odious_a or_o add_v to_o her_o deformity_n why_o and_o be_v not_o popery_n then_o such_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o general_o paint_v no_o it_o be_v no_o more_o like_o it_o than_o monarchy_n be_v to_o that_o which_o turbulent_a republican_n spirit_n show_v for_o it_o when_o display_v to_o the_o multitude_n some_o miscarriage_n of_o state_n frailty_n in_o person_n in_o dignity_n abuse_n of_o government_n etc._n etc._n they_o cry_v out_o behold_v this_o be_v monarchy_n by_o this_o mean_n make_v it_o infamous_a among_o the_o people_n that_o they_o may_v more_o easy_o overthrow_v it_o and_o be_v not_o the_o papist_n such_o as_o they_o be_v common_o represent_v no_o they_o be_v no_o more_o alike_o than_o the_o christian_n be_v of_o old_a under_o the_o persecute_v emperor_n to_o what_o they_o appear_v when_o clothe_v with_o lion_n and_o bear_n skin_n they_o be_v expose_v in_o the_o amphi-theatre_n to_o wild_a beast_n under_o those_o borrow_a shape_v to_o provoke_v their_o savage_a opposite_n to_o great_a fury_n and_o that_o they_o may_v infallible_o and_o with_o more_o rage_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n let_v monarchy_n be_v show_v in_o its_o own_o colour_n and_o the_o christian_n be_v expose_v in_o their_o own_o form_n and_o one_o will_v have_v but_o few_o maligner_n and_o the_o other_o will_v meet_v with_o a_o more_o tame_a behaviour_n even_o from_o the_o wild_a beast_n let_v any_o but_o search_n into_o the_o council_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n even_o that_o of_o trent_n than_o which_o none_o can_v be_v more_o popish_a let_v they_o peruse_v her_o catechism_n that_o ad_fw-la parochos_fw-la or_o other_o set_v forth_o for_o pastor_n to_o instruct_v their_o flock_n and_o for_o child_n youth_n and_o other_o to_o learn_v their_o christian_a doctrine_n of_o which_o there_o be_v extant_a great_a variety_n in_o english_a let_v they_o examine_v vernon_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o condan_n let_v they_o look_v into_o the_o spiritual_a book_n of_o direction_n those_o of_o bishop_n sales_n the_o follow_v of_o christ_n the_o christian_a rule_n the_o spiritual_a combat_n granado_n work_n and_o infinite_a other_o of_o this_o sort_n which_o papist_n general_o keep_v by_o they_o for_o their_o instruction_n and_o then_o let_v they_o free_o declare_v whether_o the_o papist_n be_v so_o ill_o principled_a either_o as_o to_o their_o faith_n or_o moral_n as_o they_o be_v general_o make_v appear_v a_o little_a diligence_n in_o this_o kind_n with_o a_o serious_a inquiry_n into_o their_o conversation_n their_o manner_n of_o live_v and_o die_v will_v easy_o discover_v that_o that_o of_o beast_n with_o which_o they_o be_v common_o expose_v to_o public_a be_v not_o they_o but_o only_o of_o the_o skin_n that_o be_v throw_v over_o they_o the_o papist_n own_o that_o there_o be_v among_o they_o man_n of_o very_o ill_a life_n and_o that_o if_o every_o corner_n be_v narrow_o sift_v there_o may_v be_v find_v great_a abuse_n even_o of_o the_o most_o sacred_a thing_n that_o some_o in_o great_a dignity_n have_v be_v high_o vilious_a and_o carry_v on_o wicked_a design_n that_o some_o author_n maintain_v and_o publish_v very_o absurd_a opinion_n and_o of_o ill_a consequence_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v nothing_o of_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v imperfection_n indeed_o the_o crime_n the_o scandal_n of_o some_o in_o their_o communion_n but_o such_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v oblige_v to_o approve_v maintain_v or_o imitate_v that_o they_o wish_v with_o all_o their_o heart_n there_o have_v be_v never_o any_o such_o thing_n and_o desire_v in_o these_o point_v a_o thorough_a reformation_n tho'_o the_o imprudence_n therefore_o the_o fail_n the_o extravagancy_n the_o vice_n that_o may_v be_v pick_v up_o throughout_o the_o whole_a society_n of_o papist_n be_v very_o numerous_a and_o great_a and_o too_o too_o sufficient_a if_o draw_v together_o for_o the_o compose_v a_o most_o deform_a antichristia●-monster_n yet_o the_o popery_n of_o the_o roman-catholic_n be_v no_o such_o monster_n as_o it_o be_v paint_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v common_o bring_v against_o they_o be_v as_o much_o detest_a by_o they_o as_o by_o the_o ●_z that_o lie_v the_o charge_n of_o their_o disfavour_n and_o have_v no_o more_o relation_n to_o they_o than_o weed_n and_o tare_n to_o the_o corn_n among_o which_o it_o grow_v or_o ch●ff_n to_o the_o wheat_n with_o which_o it_o lie_v mix_v in_o one_o heap_n a_o papist_n therefore_o be_v no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v above_o represent_v and_o whosoever_o enter_v that_o communion_n have_v no_o obligation_n of_o believe_v otherwise_o then_o as_o there_o specify_v and_o tho'_o in_o each_o particular_a i_o have_v cite_v no_o authority_n yet_o for_o the_o truth_n and_o exactness_n of_o the_o character_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o if_o in_o any_o point_n it_o shall_v be_v find_v to_o disagree_v i_o again_o promise_n upon_o notice_n public_o to_o own_v it_o and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o papist_n misrepresent_v it_o contain_v such_o tenet_n as_o be_v wrongful_o charge_v upon_o the_o papist_n and_o in_o at_o many_o respect_n as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o character_n in_o so_o many_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n and_o so_o far_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o disow_v they_o and_o subscribe_v to_o their_o condemnation_n and_o though_o any_o serious_a enquirer_n may_v be_v easy_o satisfy_v as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o yet_o for_o a_o public_a satisfaction_n to_o show_v that_o those_o abominable_a unchristian_a doctrine_n be_v no_o part_n of_o their_o belief_n however_o extravagant_a some_o man_n may_v be_v in_o their_o opinion_n the_o papist_n acknowledge_v that_o a_o faith_n assent_v to_o such_o tenet_n be_v whole_o opposite_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o destructive_a to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o do_v public_o invoke_v god_n almighty_n judgement_n upon_o that_o church_n which_o teach_v either_o public_o or_o private_o such_o a_o faith_n and_o since_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o christian_n to_o answer_v amen_o to_o such_o anathema_n '_o as_o be_v pronounce_v against_o thing_n apparent_o sinful_a the_o papist_n to_o show_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o disow_v the_o follow_a tenet_n common_o lay_v at_o their_o door_n do_v here_o oblige_v themselves_o that_o if_o the_o ensue_a curse_n be_v add_v to_o those_o appoint_v to_o be_v read_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o lent_n they_o will_v serious_o and_o hearty_o answer_v amen_n to_o they_o all_o i._o curse_v be_v he_o that_o commit_v idolatry_n that_o pray_v to_o image_n or_o relic_n or_o worship_n they_o for_o god_n r._n amen_o ii_o curse_a be_v every_o goddess_n worshipper_n that_o believe_v the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o be_v any_o more_o than_o a_o creature_n that_o honour_n she_o worship_v she_o or_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o she_o more_o than_o in_o god_n that_o believe_v she_o above_o her_o son_n or_o that_o she_o can_v in_o any_o thing_n command_v he_o r._n amen_o iii_o curse_v be_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v his_o redeemer_n that_o pray_v to_o they_o as_o such_o or_o that_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o they_o or_o to_o any_o creature_n whatsoever_o r._n amen_o iv._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o worship_n any_o breaden_a god_n or_o make_v god_n of_o the_o empty_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n r._n amen_o v._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o believe_v that_o priest_n can_v forgive_v sin_n whether_o the_o sinner_n repent_v or_o no_o or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o power_n in_o earth_n or_o heaven_n that_o can_v forgive_v sin_n without_o a_o hearty_a repentance_n and_o serious_a purpose_n of_o amendment_n r._n amen_o vi_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o believe_v there_o be_v authority_n in_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o that_o can_v give_v leave_n to_o commit_v sin_n or_o that_o can_v forgive_v he_o his_o sin_n for_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n r._n amen_o vii_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o believe_v that_o independent_a of_o the_o
merit_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n he_o c●n_v merit_v salvation_n by_o his_o own_o good_a work_n or_o make_v condign_a satisfaction_n for_o the_o guilt_n of_o his_o sin_n or_o the_o pain_n eternal_a due_n to_o they_o r._n amen_o viii_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o contemn_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o hide_v it_o from_o the_o people_n on_o design_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o to_o preserve_v they_o in_o ignorance_n and_o error_n r._n amen_o ix_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o undervalue_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o forsake_v scripture_n choose_v rather_o to_o follow_v humane_a tradition_n than_o it_o r._n amen_o x._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o leave_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o observe_v the_o constitution_n of_o men._n r._n amen_o xi_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o omit_v any_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n or_o keep_v the_o people_n from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o have_v occasion_n of_o discover_v the_o truth_n r._n amen_o xii_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n in_o unknown_a tongue_n such_o as_o they_o understand_v not_o or_o use_v any_o other_o mean_n to_o keep_v they_o in_o ignorance_n r._n amen_o xiii_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v give_v to_o any_o upon_o any_o account_n whatsoever_o dispensation_n to_o lie_v or_o swear_v false_o or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o at_o the_o last_o hour_n to_o protest_v himself_o innocent_a in_o case_n he_o be_v guilty_a r._n amen_o fourteen_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o encourage_v sin_n or_o teach_v man_n to_o defer_v the_o amendment_n of_o their_o life_n or_o presumption_n of_o their_o death-bed-repentance_n r._n amen_o xv._n curse_a be_v he_o that_o teach_v man_n that_o they_o may_v be_v lawful_o drink_v on_o a_o friday_n or_o any_o other_o fastingday_n though_o they_o must_v not_o taste_v the_o least_o bit_n of_o flesh._n r._n amen_o xvi_o curse_a be_v he_o who_o place_n religion_n in_o nothing_o but_o a_o pompous_a show_n consist_v only_o in_o ceremony_n and_o which_o teach_v not_o the_o people_n to_o serve_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n r._n amen_o xvii_o curse_a be_v he_o who_o love_v or_o promote_v cruelty_n that_o teach_v people_n to_o be_v bloody-minded_a and_o to_o lay_v aside_o the_o meekness_n of_o jesus_n christ._n r._n amen_o xviii_o curse_a be_v he_o who_o teach_v it_o lawful_a to_o do_v any_o wicked_a thing_n though_o it_o be_v for_o the_o interest_n and_o good_a of_o mother-church_n or_o that_o any_o evil_a action_n may_v be_v do_v that_o good_a may_v come_v on_o it_o r._n amen_o xix_o curse_a be_v we_o if_o among_o all_o those_o wicked_a principle_n and_o damnable_a doctrine_n common_o lay_v at_o our_o door_n any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o church_n and_o curse_a be_v we_o if_o we_o do_v not_o as_o hearty_o detest_v all_o those_o hellish_a practice_n as_o they_o that_o so_o vehement_o urge_v they_o against_o we_o r._n amen_o xx._n curse_a be_v we_o if_o in_o a_o answer_n and_o say_v amen_o to_o any_o of_o these_o curse_n we_o use_v any_o equivocation_n mental_a reservation_n or_o do_v not_o assent_v to_o they_o in_o the_o common_a and_o obvious_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n r._n amen_o and_o can_v the_o papist_n then_o thus_o serious_o and_o without_o check_n of_o conscience_n say_v amen_o to_o all_o these_o curse_n yes_o they_o can_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o it_o whensoever_o and_o and_o as_o often_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v require_v of_o they_o and_o what_o then_o be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o those_o who_o either_o by_o word_n or_o write_n charge_v these_o doctrine_n upon_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n be_v they_o all_o go_v aside_o do_v they_o b●ck_a b●te_n with_o their_o tongue_n do_v evil_a to_o their_o neighbour_n and_o take_v up_o reproach_n against_o th●ir_a neighbour_n i_o will_v say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o leave_v the_o impartial_a considerer_n to_o judge_v one_o thing_n i_o can_v safe_o affirm_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v foul_o miss_v represent_v and_o show_v in_o public_a as_o much_o unlike_o what_o they_o be_v as_o the_o christian_n be_v of_o old_a by_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o lie_v under_o a_o great_a calumny_n and_o severe_o smart_v in_o good_a name_n person_n and_o estate_n for_o such_o thing_n which_o they_o as_o much_o and_o as_o hearty_o detest_v as_o those_o who_o accuse_v they_o but_o the_o comfort_n be_v christ_n have_v say_v to_o his_o follower_n you_o shall_v be_v hate_v of_o all_o man_n matth._n 10.22_o and_o saint_n paul_n we_o be_v make_v a_o spectacle_n unto_o the_o world_n and_o we_o do_v doubt_n that_o who_o bear_v this_o with_o patience_n shall_v for_o every_o loss_n here_o and_o content_a receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_n in_o heaven_n for_o base_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thing_n which_o be_v despi●ed_v have_v god_n choose_v ●_o corinth_n 1.28_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o conclusion_n have_v thus_o go_v through_o the_o several_a head_n which_o our_o author_n complain_v have_v be_v so_o much_o mirsrepresent_v it_o be_v now_o fit_a to_o consider_v what_o he_o say_v in_o his_o conclusion_n which_o he_o make_v to_o answer_v his_o introduction_n by_o renew_v therein_o his_o doleful_a complaint_n of_o their_o be_v misrepresent_v just_a as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v i_o hope_v the_o former_a discourse_n have_v show_v their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v not_o so_o very_a like_o those_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n that_o their_o case_n shall_v be_v make_v so_o parallel_v but_o as_o in_o his_o conclusion_n he_o have_v sum_v up_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o representation_n so_o i_o shall_v therein_o follow_v his_o method_n only_o with_o this_o difference_n that_o i_o shall_v in_o one_o column_n set_v down_o his_o own_o representation_n of_o popery_n and_o in_o the_o other_o the_o reason_n in_o short_a why_o we_o can_v embrace_v they_o wherein_o popery_n consist_v as_o represent_v by_o this_o author_n 1._o in_o use_v all_o external_a act_n of_o adoration_n before_o image_n as_o kneel_v pray_v lift_v up_o the_o eye_n burn_a candle_n incense_n etc._n etc._n not_o mere_o to_o worship_v the_o object_n before_o they_o but_o to_o worship_v the_o image_n themselves_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o object_n represent_v by_o they_o or_o in_o his_o own_o word_n because_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v exhibit_v to_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o prototype_n which_o they_o represent_v 2._o in_o join_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n together_o with_o christ_n in_o intercession_n for_o we_o and_o make_v prayer_n on_o earth_n to_o they_o on_o that_o account_n 3._o in_o allow_v more_o supplication_n to_o be_v use_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n than_o to_o christ_n for_o he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o idle_a superstition_n to_o repeat_v ten_o ave_fw-la maria_n for_o one_o paternoster_n 4._o in_o give_v religious_a honour_n and_o respect_n to_o relic_n such_o as_o place_v they_o upon_o altar_n burn_a wax_n candle_n before_o they_o carry_v they_o in_o procession_n to_o be_v see_v touch_v or_o humble_o kiss_v by_o the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o know_v &_o allow_v practice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 5._o in_o adore_v christ_n as_o present_v in_o the_o eucharist_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o suffer_v on_o the_o cróss_n 6._o in_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o species_n only_o or_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v as_o before_o 7._o in_o make_v good_a work_n to_o be_v true_o meritorious_a of_o eternal_a life_n 8._o in_o make_v confession_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n in_o order_n to_o absolution_n 9_o in_o the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n for_o take_v away_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o sin_n remain_v due_a after_o the_o gild_n be_v remit_v 10._o in_o suppose_v the_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v in_o some_o measure_n satisfy_v by_o prayer_n fast_v alm_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n which_o by_o order_n of_o god_n justice_n sometime_o remain_v due_a after_o the_o gild_n and_o the_o eternal_a pain_n be_v remit_v 11._o in_o think_v the_o scripture_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v read_v general_o by_o all_o without_o licence_n or_o in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n 12._o in_o allow_v the_o book_n of_o tobit_n judith_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la wisdom_n maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a 13._o in_o prefer_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a edition_n
of_o the_o bible_n before_o any_o other_o and_o not_o allow_v any_o translation_n into_o a_o mother-tongue_n to_o be_v ordinary_o read_v 14._o in_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o any_o private_a or_o particular_a person_n 15._o in_o rely_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 16._o in_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o church_n tradition_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o assent_v to_o they_o with_o divine_a faith_n just_a as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o b●ble_a 17._o in_o believe_v that_o the_o present_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v assemble_v in_o council_n for_o preserve_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n in_o their_o decree_n 18._o in_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n under_o christ_n be_v successor_n to_o s._n peter_n to_o who_o he_o commit_v the_o care_n of_o his_o flock_n 19_o in_o believe_v that_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v a_o indifferent_a thing_n and_o be_v so_o hold_v for_o the_o first_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o first_o precept_n for_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n be_v give_v to_o the_o faithful_a by_o pope_n leo_n i._n and_o confirm_v by_o pope_n gelasius_n 20._o in_o believe_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v found_v on_o scripture_n authority_n and_o reason_n 21._o in_o believe_v that_o to_o the_o say_n of_o prayer_n well_o and_o devout_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o have_v attention_n on_o the_o word_n or_o on_o the_o sense_n of_o prayer_n 22._o in_o believe_v that_o none_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v save_v and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o uncharitableness_n to_o think_v so_o 23._o in_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o the_o new_a article_n define_v at_o trent_n have_v make_v no_o innovation_n in_o mat_n ter_v of_o faith_n our_o reason_n against_o it_o in_o the_o several_a particular_n 1._o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n or_o any_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o which_o be_v the_o plain_a clear_a and_o express_v word_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n we_o dare_v not_o worship_v any_o image_n or_o representation_n lest_o we_o be_v find_v transgressor_n of_o this_o law_n especial_o since_o god_n herein_o have_v declare_v himself_o a_o jealous_a god_n and_o annex_v so_o severe_a a_o sanction_n to_o it_o and_o since_o he_o that_o make_v the_o law_n be_v only_o to_o interpret_v it_o all_o the_o dictinction_n in_o the_o world_n can_v never_o satisfy_v a_o man_n conscience_n unless_o it_o appear_v that_o god_n himself_o do_v either_o make_v or_o approve_v they_o and_o if_o god_n allow_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o thing_n represent_v by_o the_o representation_n he_o will_v never_o have_v forbid_v that_o worship_n absolute_o which_o be_v unlawful_a only_o in_o a_o certain_a respect_n 2._o we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a 1_o john_n 2.1_o and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o for_o christ_n be_v enter_v into_o heaven_n itself_o now_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n for_o we_o heb._n 9_o 24._o and_o therefore_o we_o dare_v not_o make_v other_o intercessor_n in_o heaven_n beside_o he_o and_o the_o distance_n between_o heaven_n and_o we_o break_v off_o all_o communication_n between_o the_o saint_n there_o and_o we_o upon_o earth_n so_o that_o all_o address_n to_o they_o now_o for_o their_o prayer_n be_v in_o a_o way_n very_o different_a from_o desire_v other_o on_o earth_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o if_o such_o address_n be_v make_v in_o the_o solemn_a office_n of_o divine_a worship_n they_o join_v the_o creature_n with_o the_o creator_n in_o the_o act_n and_o sign_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o 3._o call_v upon_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o psal_o 50.15_o when_o we_o pray_v to_o our_o father_n in_o heaven_n as_o our_o saviour_n command_v we_o we_o do_v b●t_v what_o both_o natural_a and_o christian_a religion_n require_v we_o to_o do_v but_o when_o man_n pray_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n for_o help_n and_o protection_n now_o and_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n they_o attribute_v that_o to_o she_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o god_n who_o be_v our_o helper_n and_o defender_n and_o although_o christ_n know_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o mother_n above_o all_o other_o he_o never_o give_v the_o least_o encouragement_n to_o make_v such_o address_n to_o she_o and_o to_o suppose_v she_o to_o have_v a_o share_n now_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n as_o a_o copartner_n with_o he_o be_v to_o advance_v a_o creature_n to_o divine_a honour_n and_o to_o overthrow_v the_o true_a ground_n of_o christ_n exaltation_n to_o his_o kingdom_n in_o heaven_n which_o be_v his_o suffering_n on_o the_o cross_n for_o we_o 4._o and_o no_o man_n know_v of_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o moses_n unto_o this_o day_n deut._n 34.6_o why_o shall_v god_n hide_v the_o body_n of_o moses_n from_o the_o people_n if_o h●_n allow_v give_v religious_a honour_n and_o respect_n to_o relic_n why_o shall_v hezekiah_n break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n because_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v burn_v incense_n to_o it_o 2_o king_n 18.4_o especial_o when_o it_o be_v a_o type_n or_o representation_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o god_n have_v wrought_v many_o miracle_n by_o it_o 5._o who_o the_o heaven_n must_v receive_v until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n act_n 3.21_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o eucharist_n we_o adore_v he_o as_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n but_o we_o dare_v not_o direct_v our_o adoration_n to_o the_o consecrate_a host_n which_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n though_o consecrate_v to_o a_o divine_a mystery_n and_o therefore_o not_o a_o fit_a object_n for_o our_o adoration_n 6._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 10.16_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o bread_n after_o consecration_n and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n suppose_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n still_o and_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o body_n be_v interpret_v by_o the_o next_o word_n for_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n v_o 17._o which_o be_v very_o different_a from_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o opinion_n that_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n and_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o common_a principle_n of_o reason_n which_o god_n have_v give_v we_o and_o expose_v christian_a religion_n to_o the_o reproach_n and_o contempt_n of_o jew_n turk_n and_o infidel_n 7._o when_o you_o shall_v have_v do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v you_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n we_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o do_v st._n luke_n 17.10_o and_o therefore_o in_o no_o sense_n can_v our_o best_a work_n be_v true_o meritorious_a of_o eternal_a life_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o just_a proportion_n or_o due_a commensuration_n between_o our_o best_a action_n and_o such_o a_o reward_n 8._o and_o the_o son_n say_v to_o he_o father_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o in_o thy_o sight_n s._n luke_n 15.21_o where_o confession_n to_o god_n be_v require_v because_o the_o offence_n be_v against_o he_o but_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n upon_o earth_n to_o forgive_v those_o who_o god_n do_v not_o forgive_v and_o he_o alone_o can_v appoint_v the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o pardon_n among_o which_o true_a contrition_n and_o repentance_n be_v full_o declare_v but_o confession_n to_o a_o priest_n tho'_o it_o may_v be_v useful_a for_o the_o ease_n of_o the_o penitent_a be_v no_o where_o in_o scripture_n make_v necessary_a for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 9_o i_o say_v i_o will_v confess_v my_o transgression_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n psal._n 32.5_o if_o god_n do_v full_o forgive_v the_o gild_n of_o sin_n there_o remain_v no_o obligation_n to_o punishment_n for_o wherever_o that_o be_v the_o guilt_n remain_v it_o be_v true_a god_n may_v not_o sometime_o full_o pardon_v but_o he_o may_v reserve_v some_o temporal_a punishment_n here_o for_o his_o own_o
occasion_n of_o mention_v it_o if_o ever_o christ_n have_v institute_v a_o headship_n in_o the_o church_n &_o give_v it_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 19_o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o do_v show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v 1_o cor._n 15.26_o the_o apostle_n speak_v to_o all_o communicant_n plain_o show_v that_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o all_o shall_v partake_v of_o both_o kind_n and_o so_o to_o continue_v to_o do_v as_o long_o as_o this_o sacrament_n be_v to_o show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n viz._n till_o his_o second_o come_n and_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o assert_v the_o christian_a church_n ever_o look_v on_o observe_v christ_n institution_n in_o this_o matter_n as_o a_o indifferent_a thing_n no_o not_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ._n although_o the_o practice_n and_o the_o obligation_n be_v two_o thing_n yet_o when_o the_o practice_n be_v so_o agreeable_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o continue_v so_o long_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v hardly_o possible_a for_o we_o to_o prove_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o obligation_n by_o a_o better_a way_n than_o by_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o practice_n and_o if_o some_o tradition_n must_v be_v think_v bind_v and_o far_o from_o be_v indifferent_a which_o want_v all_o that_o evidence_n which_o this_o practice_n carry_v along_o with_o it_o how_o unreasonable_a be_v it_o in_o this_o case_n to_o allow_v the_o practice_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o obligation_n 20._o and_o who_o he_o justify_v they_o he_o also_o glorify_v rom._n 8.30_o but_o who_o god_n justify_v they_o have_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n as_o to_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o if_o those_o who_o be_v thus_o justify_v must_v be_v glorify_v what_o place_n be_v there_o for_o purgatory_n for_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o intimation_n of_o any_o other_o state_n of_o punishment_n that_o any_o who_o be_v justify_v must_v pass_v through_o before_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o glory_n we_o grant_v they_o may_v notwithstanding_o pass_v through_o many_o intermediate_v trial_n in_o this_o world_n but_o we_o say_v where_o there_o be_v justification_n there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n but_o where_o any_o part_n of_o guilt_n remain_v unremit_v there_o be_v a_o condemnation_n remain_v so_o far_o as_o the_o punishment_n extend_v and_o so_o this_o distinction_n as_o to_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a pain_n as_o it_o be_v make_v the_o foundation_n of_o purgatory_n be_v whole_o groundless_a and_o therefore_o the_o doctrine_n build_v upon_o it_o can_v have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n or_o reason_n 21._o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o 1_o cor._n 14.15_o what_o need_v this_o pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n if_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o attend_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o prayer_n for_o then_o pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n be_v all_o that_o be_v require_v for_o that_o suppose_v a_o attention_n of_o the_o mind_n upon_o god_n and_o i_o can_v hardly_o believe_v any_o man_n that_o think_v with_o understanding_n can_v justify_v pray_v without_o it_o especial_o when_o there_o be_v exhortation_n and_o invitation_n to_o the_o people_n to_o join_v in_o those_o prayer_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a there_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a office_n 22._o then_o peter_n open_v his_o mouth_n and_o say_v of_o a_o truth_n i_o perceive_v that_o god_n be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n but_o in_o every_o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o work_v righteousness_n be_v accept_v with_o he_o act_v 10.34_o 35._o whereby_o we_o perceive_v that_o god_n do_v not_o limit_v the_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n under_o the_o gospel_n to_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o if_o s._n peter_n may_v be_v believe_v the_o capacity_n of_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o man_n fear_v god_n and_o work_a righteousness_n and_o it_o be_v horrible_a uncharitableness_n to_o exclude_v those_o from_o a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n who_o god_n do_v not_o exclude_v from_o it_o 23._o that_o you_o shall_v earnest_o contend_v for_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n judas_n v._n 3._o therefore_o all_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v at_o first_o deliver_v and_o whatever_o article_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n can_v never_o be_v make_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n which_o overthrow_v the_o additional_a creed_n of_o pius_n iv._o after_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o put_v they_o upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o prove_v the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o those_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n and_o when_o they_o do_v that_o we_o may_v think_v better_o of_o they_o than_o at_o present_a we_o do_v for_o as_o yet_o we_o can_v see_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o reason_n nor_o antiquity_n for_o they_o thus_o i_o have_v represent_v that_o kind_n of_o popery_n which_o our_o author_n who_o complain_v so_o much_o of_o misrepresent_v allow_v and_o i_o have_v in_o short_a set_v down_o how_o little_a ground_n we_o have_v to_o be_v fond_a of_o it_o nay_o to_o speak_v more_o plain_o it_o be_v that_o we_o can_v never_o yield_v to_o without_o betray_v the_o truth_n renounce_v our_o sense_n and_o reason_n wound_v our_o conscience_n dishonour_v god_n and_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n pervert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o to_o christ_n satisfaction_n intercession_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n deprive_v the_o people_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v appoint_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n observe_v and_o damn_v those_o for_o who_o christ_n die_v we_o do_v now_o in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o our_o heart_n appeal_v to_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v no_o design_n to_o misrepresent_v they_o or_o to_o make_v their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n appear_v worse_a than_o they_o be_v but_o take_v they_o with_o all_o the_o advantage_n even_o this_o author_n have_v set_v they_o out_o with_o we_o dare_v appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n of_o any_o impartial_a man_n whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v allow_v on_o both_o side_n our_o doctrine_n be_v not_o far_o more_o agreeable_a thereto_o than_o the_o new_a article_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v the_o very_a life_n and_o soul_n of_o popery_n whether_o our_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v not_o more_o suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o perfection_n and_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o will_n than_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o invocation_n of_o fellow-creature_n whether_o the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n do_v not_o tend_v more_o to_o promote_v holiness_n in_o the_o world_n than_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v and_o allow_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i._n e._n with_o the_o easiness_n and_o efficacy_n of_o absolution_n and_o get_v off_o the_o remainder_n by_o indulgence_n satisfaction_n of_o other_o and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o to_o have_v prayer_n and_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o language_n which_o the_o people_n understand_v and_o last_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o more_o of_o christian_a charity_n in_o believe_v and_o hope_v the_o best_a of_o those_o vast_a body_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o eastern_a southern_a western_a and_o northern_a part_n than_o to_o pronounce_v they_o all_o uncapable_a of_o salvation_n on_o that_o account_n and_o therefore_o out_o of_o regard_n to_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a religion_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n out_o of_o regard_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o own_o and_o other_o soul_n we_o can_v but_o very_o much_o prefer_v the_o communion_n of_o our_o own_o church_n before_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o before_o i_o conclude_v all_o i_o must_v take_v some_o notice_n of_o his_o anathema_n and_o here_o i_o be_o as_o much_o unsatisfy_a as_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o his_o book_n and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n 1._o because_o he_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o authority_n to_o make_v they_o suppose_v they_o be_v mean_v never_o so_o sincere_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v ever_o object_v they_o to_o any_o other_o of_o that_o church_n they_o will_v present_o say_v what_o have_v he_o to_o do_v to_o make_v anathema_n it_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o general_a council_n to_o pronounce_v anathema_n and_o not_o to_o any_o private_a person_n whatsoever_o so_o that_o if_o he_o will_v have_v
publish_v anathema_n with_o authority_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v print_v those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n viz._n such_o as_o these_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o do_v not_o allow_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n curse_a be_v he_o that_o say_v saint_n be_v not_o to_o be_v invocate_v curse_a be_v he_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n 2._o because_o he_o leave_v out_o a_o anathema_n in_o a_o very_a material_a point_n viz._n as_o to_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n we_o do_v free_o and_o from_o our_o heart_n anathematise_v all_o such_o doctrine_n as_o tend_v to_o dissolve_v the_o bond_n of_o allegiance_n to_o our_o sovereign_n on_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o why_o be_v this_o pass_v over_o by_o he_o without_o any_o kind_n of_o anathema_n since_o he_o seem_v to_o approve_v the_o oxford_n censure_n why_o do_v he_o not_o here_o show_v his_o zeal_n against_o all_o such_o dangerous_a doctrine_n if_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n be_v false_o charge_v upon_o their_o church_n let_v we_o but_o once_o see_v it_o anathematise_v by_o public_a authority_n of_o their_o church_n and_o we_o have_v do_v but_o instead_o thereof_o we_o find_v in_o a_o book_n very_o late_o publish_v with_o great_a approbation_n by_o a_o present_a professor_n at_o louvain_n fr._n d'enghien_n all_o the_o censure_n on_o the_o other_o side_n censure_v and_o despise_v and_o the_o hold_v the_o negative_a as_o to_o the_o depose_v doctrine_n 430._o be_v declare_v by_o he_o to_o be_v heresy_n or_o next_o to_o heresy_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o sorban_n against_o sanctarellus_n he_o say_v be_v only_o do_v by_o a_o faction_n and_o that_o of_o sixty_o eight_o doctor_n there_o be_v but_o eighteen_o present_a and_o the_o late_a censure_n of_o the_o sorban_n 549._o he_o say_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o inquisition_n at_o toledo_n j●n_n 10._o 1683._o as_o erroneous_a and_o schismatical_a and_o so_o by_o the_o clergy_n of_o hungary_n oct._n 24._o 1682._o we_o do_v not_o question_v but_o there_o be_v divine_n that_o oppose_v it_o but_o we_o fear_v there_o be_v too_o many_o who_o do_v not_o and_o we_o find_v they_o boast_v of_o their_o own_o number_n and_o despise_v the_o rest_n as_o a_o inconsiderable_a party_n this_o we_o do_v not_o misrepresent_v they_o in_o for_o their_o most_o approve_a book_n do_v show_v it_o however_o we_o do_v not_o question_v but_o there_o be_v several_a worthy_a and_o loyal_a gentleman_n of_o that_o religion_n of_o different_a principle_n and_o practice_n and_o it_o be_v pity_v such_o be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o those_o who_o will_v not_o renounce_v a_o doctrine_n so_o dangerous_a in_o the_o consequence_n of_o it_o 3._o because_o the_o anathema_n he_o have_v set_v down_o be_v not_o pen_v so_o plain_o and_o clear_o as_o to_o give_v any_o real_a satisfaction_n but_o with_o so_o much_o art_n and_o sophistry_n as_o if_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o beguile_v weak_a and_o unwary_a reader_n who_o see_v not_o into_o the_o depth_n of_o these_o thing_n and_o therefore_o may_v think_v he_o have_v do_v great_a matter_n in_o his_o anathema_n when_o if_o they_o be_v strict_o examine_v they_o come_v to_o little_a or_o nothing_o as_o 1._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o commit_v idolatry_n a_o unwary_a reader_n will_v think_v herein_o he_o disown_v all_o that_o he_o accuse_v of_o idolatry_n but_o he_o do_v not_o curse_v any_o thing_n as_o idolatry_n but_o what_o himself_o think_v to_o be_v so_o so_o again_o curse_a be_v he_o not_o that_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o image_n but_o that_o pray_v to_o image_n or_o relic_n as_o god_n or_o worship_n they_o for_o go_n so_o that_o if_o he_o do_v not_o take_v the_o image_n themselves_o for_o god_n he_o be_v safe_a enough_o from_o his_o own_o anathema_n 2._o curse_a be_v every_o goddess_n worshipper_n i._n e._n that_o believe_v the_o bless_a virgin_n not_o to_o be_v a_o creature_n and_o so_o they_o escape_v all_o the_o force_n of_o this_o anathema_n curse_a be_v he_o that_o honour_n she_o or_o put_v his_o trust_n in_o she_o more_o than_o in_o god_n so_o that_o if_o they_o honour_v she_o and_o trust_v in_o she_o but_o just_a as_o much_o as_o in_o god_n they_o be_v safe_a enough_o or_o that_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v above_o her_o son_n but_o no_o anathema_n to_o such_o as_o suppose_v she_o to_o be_v equal_a to_o he_o 3._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n to_o be_v his_o redeemer_n that_o pray_v to_o they_o as_o such_o what_o if_o man_n pray_v to_o they_o as_o their_o spiritual_a guardian_n and_o protector_n be_v not_o this_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o they_o do_v this_o deserve_v no_o anathema_n 4._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o worship_v any_o breaden_a god_n or_o make_v god_n of_o the_o empty_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n viz._n that_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o yet_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v god_n too_o do_v not_o this_o look_n like_o nonsense_n and_o yet_o i_o be_o afraid_a our_o author_n will_v think_v it_o a_o severe_a anathema_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o say_v curse_v be_v he_o who_o believe_v nonsense_n and_o contradiction_n it_o will_v be_v needless_a to_o set_v down_o more_o since_o i_o have_v endeavour_v by_o clear_a state_v the_o several_a controversy_n to_o prevent_v the_o reader_n be_v impose_v upon_o by_o deceitful_a anathema_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o he_o say_v curse_a be_v we_o if_o in_o answer_v and_o say_v amen_o to_o any_o of_o these_o curse_n we_o use_v any_o equivocation_n or_o mental_a reservation_n or_o do_v not_o assent_v to_o they_o in_o the_o common_a and_o obvious_a use_n of_o the_o word_n but_o there_o may_v be_v no_o equivocation_n in_o the_o very_a word_n and_o yet_o there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a one_o in_o the_o intention_n and_o design_n of_o they_o there_o may_v be_v none_o in_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o curse_n so_o word_v but_o if_o he_o will_v have_v prevent_v all_o suspicion_n of_o equivocation_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v put_v it_o thus_o curse_v be_v we_o if_o we_o have_v not_o fair_o and_o ingenuous_o express_v the_o whole_a meaning_n of_o our_o church_n as_o to_o the_o point_n condemn_v in_o these_o anathema_n or_o if_o we_o have_v by_o they_o design_v to_o deceive_v the_o people_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v he_o will_v not_o so_o ready_o have_v say_v amen_o the_o content_n  _fw-fr papist_n protestant_n  _fw-fr page_n page_n the_o introduction_n and_o answer_n 1_o 10_o of_o pray_v to_o image_n 19_o 20_o of_o worship_a saint_n 28_o 29_o of_o addressing_z more_o supplication_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n than_o to_o christ._n 36_o 37_o of_o pay_v divine_a worship_n to_o relic_n 42_o 43_o of_o the_o eucharist_n 46_o 47_o of_o merit_n and_o good_a work_n 57_o 57_o of_o confession_n 61_o 62_o of_o indulgence_n 65_o 66_o of_o satisfaction_n 68_o 69_o of_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n 70_o 71_o of_o apocryphal_a book_n 74_o 75_o of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n of_o the_o bible_n 77_o 79_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n 80_o 81_o of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 82_o 83_o of_o tradition_n 85_o 86_o of_o council_n 87_o 89_o of_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n 90_o 93_o of_o the_o pope_n 95_o 97_o of_o dispensation_n 100_o 102_o of_o the_o depose_v power_n 105_o 107_o of_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_a 111_o 113_o of_o the_o mass._n 116_o 118_o of_o purgatory_n 119_o 122_o of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 127_o 129_o of_o the_o second_o commandment_n 132_o 133_o of_o mental_a reservation_n 134_o 136_o of_o a_o deathbed_n repentance_n 137_o 138_o of_o fast_v 139_o 140_o of_o division_n and_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n 142_o 143_o of_o friar_n and_o nun_n 145_o 147_o of_o wicked_a principle_n and_o practice_n 148_o 151_o of_o miracle_n 153_o 154_o of_o holy-water_n 156_o 158_o of_o breed_n up_o people_n in_o ignorance_n 159_o 161_o of_o the_o vncharitableness_n of_o the_o papist_n 162_o 166_o of_o ceremony_n and_o ordinance_n 168_o 173_o of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 173_o 180_o the_o conclusion_n and_o answer_n to_o it_o 182_o 188_o finis_fw-la apog_n c._n 2._o sp._n anno_fw-la 286._o par._n 5._o 5._o spond_n an._n 362._o 362._o id._n anno_fw-la 66._o 66._o apo._n c._n 40._o 40._o apo._n c._n 3._o 3._o p._n 1._o pag._n 936._o bulla_n pii_fw-la 4_o ●i_fw-la super_fw-la confirmat_fw-la council_n tridentini_n the_o venom_n voyage_n 〈◊〉_d inn_n p._n 188._o bernier_n memoirs_fw-fr tom._n 3._o p._n 172._o suarez_n i●_n 3._o per●_n qu._n 2d_o disp._n 53._o §._o 3.2_o ●●_o 〈◊〉_d ●5_n §_o 5._o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr imag._n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o ●_o condil_n trident_n sess._n 25._o moy●n●_n sur_n &_o 〈…〉_z conversion_n de_fw-fr to●s_fw-fr les_fw-fr heretic_n to._n 2._o p._n